She Who Sleeps ๐ŸŒ™ | Mysterious Adventure by Sax Rohmer ๐Ÿ•ต๏ธโ€โ™‚๏ธ

    In ‘She Who Sleeps’ by Sax Rohmer, we are introduced to a world shrouded in mystery and intrigue. A powerful tale that blends the supernatural with the unknown, it follows the journey of a man drawn into an enigmatic web of secrets, danger, and fascination. As we delve into the story, we encounter strange figures and uncanny forces that defy logic, leaving us questioning what lies beneath the surface of reality. Stay with us as we explore the twists and turns of this captivating story of suspense and the unexplained. Chapter 1. A Flash Of Lightning. Barry Cumberland pushed on through a growing darkness. There seemed to be an unfamiliar quality in this darkness which he first noticed when, quite mechanically, he stooped to switch on his headlights, and in doing so saw the time by the clock in the car. He slowed down for a moment, on a crossways, and stared into the west. A great cloud, black as the pall of Avalon, was draped before the sinking sun. As he watched, it crept farther and farther up the dome of blue, like a velvet curtain drawn by giant hands. Through a gap in the trees which had closely beset the path for some distance now, Barry looked down into the valley along which his route lay to the highroad and New York. Three hundred feet below, perched apparently on the edge of a ravine, he saw a house. Some rent in the curtain of the storm had allowed a ray like a searchlight to break through and to shine upon a sort of turret which crowned the building. Shrinking behind guardian walls and overhanging yet lower depths, the effect was that of a drawing by Sidney Sime. Beyond, the road zigzagged, disappeared into shadow, later to reappear in the form of a bridge, until it finally became lost to sight before the plain was reached. The moving curtain blotted out the light. Where a fairy castle had been, eerily illuminated, came blackness. He looked ahead sharply, accelerated, and knowing the violence of these sudden storms in the mountains, prayed that his Rolls would deliver him from treacherous byways before the blinding rain began. He had only himself to blame if he should be stormbound. For no reason that he could have defined he had left a cheery crowd at the club, with never a word of farewell, urged by a sudden irrational impulse to reach home in time for supper. Such abrupt changes of plan were characteristic of Barry, annoying to his friends, but in no way destructive of his popularity. A young man endowed with good looks, charm of manner, and John Cumberland for a father is not dropped socially merely because nature has designed him for a poet in a material age. Through this ever growing darkness he drove on; and although the route was one which normally carried little traffic, it seemed that this evening not a soul rode or walked upon the length of it. But loneliness dovetailed with his mood. He welcomed it. And so, when a sharp bend leading to a long descent set the storm behind him, he thought of it as a pursuer. He took the slope in breakneck fashion. It was a race against the pursuing darkness. Presently came a dangerous turning which he remembered. But he had possessed the Rolls–a birthday present from his father–long enough for it to have become a part of him, responsive almost to a thought, nearly to a mood. He checked where a ragged fence appeared suddenly ahead like a barrier and negotiated a tortured figure S which brought him out above a sheer drop. Beneath lay meadows where late corn showed speckled gold in the crawling shadows. Down, the road led, and still down. A gallant ray from the stifled sun alighted momentarily upon white walls of a building far ahead. He was aware of a flowered porch, a window, a low roof. Vaguely he recalled this little home. Something had drawn his attention to it upon the outward journey from New York. Then it was blotted out like a house of dreams; but he was losing nothing on the storm. The race grew more and more real. Some classic analogy cropped up in his mind; a fragment of half forgotten studies which he could not identify. He became a mortal defying the gods. But from this flight of imagination he came sharply back to earth. The house by the roadside passed–and even now he was bearing down upon it–what lay beyond? Jim Sakers, his pilot on the outward run, now was many miles behind, probably dancing; happily unconscious of the fact that his friend, bareheaded, in dinner kit, was racing for New York, a victim of moods, pursued by the storm. There was a bridge, Barry remembered. They had passed a Studebaker on it; very nice navigation, for the bridge was narrow. Yes! Here was the bridge. The Rolls went booming across it at fifty five. And now Barry sighted his first pedestrian: an old man with a clean shaven upper lip and a tufty white beard. He wore blue overalls, a huge plaid cap which would have suited Harry Lauder, and smoked a very short pipe. Pausing, he stepped hurriedly aside as the bareheaded madman swept by in a cloud of dust. His cap went up like a Scotch balloon. Barry clenched his teeth. The shadow was gaining upon him. Oh! for a long, straight turnpike where he could open up. But memory warned him that there were many tortuous miles in which no such race track offered. Now came a long sweeping curve which he recalled clearly, tree bordered on the one side, and, on the other, outlining an upcrop of primitive sandstone, where sparse vegetation and scattered rocks formed an isthmus around which his route lay. Here for a moment he could glance aside. The black curtain was still gaining. The storm promised to win. Into a cutting he plunged, high banked, tree topped, through the blackness of which his headlights carved like a gleaming scimitar. Some little animal shot across the blade of silver. He resigned himself to his mood, wondering in what way he differed from his friends, what barrier it was that would intrude at times between him and those enjoyments for which others never lost zest. In the games and amusements to which they devoted much of their lives he took part; and most of the things that Barry Cumberland attempted he did well. His sports record was good, but not excellent. He was happy in athletic pursuits, but could never screw up any enthusiasm for pot hunting. Cards frankly bored him. He danced well, except when abruptly, unaccountably, his dancing mood left him and he experienced a sudden longing for the silence of imaginary forests. The girls about whom other men raved stirred him but slightly. They were all too true to pattern. The thought of home life with any one of them was definitely objectionable. He took a sharp bend at dangerous speed, wondering if, during a long projected but never accomplished tour of Europe, he should meet a girl having power to arouse that curious state of unrest which he had sometimes noted in his friends and vaguely wished he could experience. No doubt he was a visionary. He had often been told so. Perhaps the influence of his own home might be to blame. It was only reasonable to suppose that an establishment which is less a residence than a museum of Ancient Egyptian antiquities, should contribute something to the character of one born and reared in it. Those almond eyed, slender priestesses, so alluring, so aloof, had possibly played a part in disabusing his mind of any romance in connection with the girls of that very modern set to which he belonged. Since childhood they had looked down upon him, from wall paintings, vases, bas reliefs, those cloudily robed, sinuous Egyptians, whose long eyes were wells of feminine secrets; who had never smoked or tasted cocktails, but who lived in a mysterious world which for some reason he identified with the deep notes of an organ. Yes, it was their mystery that appealed to him. Mystery was what he sought, but never found, among the women of his acquaintance. The road became a high ledge, a thread encircling a bowl of shadow. The gradient grew dangerously steep, and Barry checked speed almost unconsciously. His musing had carried him many miles. Startled, he became aware of the fact that he could recall no point of the route from the spot where he had passed that solitary pedestrian. But the black cloud had won; for a darkness like night had fallen all around him. He must think what lay at the bottom of this winding road, and how they had approached it. He seemed to remember that there was a fork; that they had come out upon the valley side by one of three ways. But by which of them? He slowed down more and more as he reached the bottom of the slope, which now turned sharply eastward out of the valley. He had been right. Three roads opened before him. His decision was promptly made. He swung into the middle route, confidently giving the Rolls her head again. On he raced, along a smooth avenue, overshadowed, and so dark that midnight might have come. During that momentary check he had heard the booming of thunder, away behind him in the west. The avenue began to curve south. It seemed to be unfamiliarly narrow. More and more southerly it inclined, until at last came a crossroad. He pulled up, hesitated, and knew definitely that he had made a wrong choice. It was the north fork he should have taken. Therefore he turned left into the crossing, presuming that it must bring him out upon his proper route. Going was very bad. The Rolls bumped and shook from stem to stern. But he pursued his way and swore under his breath when he found that this road also inclined to the south. But now, through an opening in the trees, he saw yet another crossway. Left again he swung, pursued by louder rumbling of thunder. Rain was beginning to fall. Suddenly, his head lamps flooded a high wall. He wondered, but drove on; when–blinding, awesome–the lightning cameโ€ฆ and he saw Her! There was a stone faced house not twenty yards ahead, and on a balcony high up before an open window she stood. She wore some kind of cloudy robe–a jewelled girdle–the dress of a Theban priestess! One hand upraised rested against the sash of the window, the other upon the curve of her hip. She had long dark eyes which seemed to be watching him, and her lips were parted in a slight smile.โ€ฆ โ€œI am dreaming,โ€ he said aloud. โ€œAn Egyptian princess!โ€ Save that it seemed to live, the beautiful figure was one of those out of a dim past which had watched over him from childhood! And now the wheel was wrenched from Barryโ€™s grasp–he was aware of a cry–a loud, splintering crash–a sickening blow on the skull–of no more.โ€ฆ Chapter 2. The Dividing Line. Very slowly Barry Cumberland opened his eyes–took one look straight before him–and then shut them again quickly. Something was wrong. He could swear he had been sitting but a moment before with his back against the giant pillar of an Ancient Egyptian building, staring at a window high up in a temple wall. In the moonlight he had seen a beautiful priestess standing at this window; and he had been waiting patiently–patiently–for a black cloud to pass, a cloud that had suddenly obscured the moon and hidden the slender figure. Yes, those were the facts, he felt fairly confident. He opened his eyes again. He saw a small, very clean white room; and he was lying in a very clean white bed. He seemed to be propped up in some way, and he experienced great difficulty in moving his head, together with great disinclination to do so because of a dull pain above his eyes. There were some medicine bottles and cups upon a glass topped table, and there was a tall white screen of some very glossy material. The only spot of colour in the room was a bowl filled with red roses, which also stood upon the table. He wondered idly what was behind the screen, and then closed his eyes once more. There was some mistake. No doubt the explanation was simple enough, but his brain seemed to be tired, physically tired. He found himself incapable of grappling with the problem. In one respect, of course, he must have been wrong: In regard to the Egyptian temple. He had never been in Egypt. In his idea that he lay in this unfamiliar white room, no doubt he was wrong, also; although the red roses were suspiciously like the handiwork of his Aunt Micky. Without Barry becoming aware of any movement, a cool hand was presently laid upon his forehead. For the third time he raised weary lids–and found himself looking into a pair of kindly eyes, their kindliness magnified by the glasses which their owner wore. A white capped nurse was bending over him! She was entirely dressed in white, too. Everything in the place seemed to be white, except the roses, which were red, and the nurseโ€™s eyes, which were blue. โ€œAh!โ€ she said, speaking in a low, soothing voice which yet had a note of gaiety in it, โ€œso you have decided to wake up.โ€ Barry Cumberland tried to say Yes, but only achieved a whisper. Great heavens! He had never felt so cheap in his life! What was it all about? โ€œDonโ€™t bother to talk,โ€ the soothing voice went on. โ€œWhen you have had another little sleep you will feel ever so much better. I have brought you a drink.โ€ She held a glass to his lips. He drank, looking into the kindly, smiling eyes; and fell asleep again. The next time he awoke, the nurse was sitting in a chair beside him, reading. Presumably it was night, for a silk shaded lamp was lighted upon the table at her elbow. Barry stirred slightly and turned in her direction. She looked up at once. โ€œGood evening,โ€ she said; โ€œis there anything you want?โ€ โ€œNo, thank you.โ€ His voice was very low, but at least he could make himself understand. โ€œExcept–where am I?โ€ โ€œIn the first place, you are quite all right,โ€ she replied in her gentle way. โ€œYou were thrown out of your car, you know, and really had–a most lucky escape. In the second place, you are in the Elizabeth Foundation Hospital.โ€ โ€œThrown out of my car?โ€ Barry muttered. โ€œElizabeth? How did I get to Elizabeth?โ€ The nurse looked at him doubtfully, stood up, and: โ€œI am not at all sure that you should be allowed to talk yet,โ€ she said in a tone of authority. โ€œAt any rate, it is time for your medicine.โ€ She measured out a dose from a graduated bottle on the table, and held it to his lips. He drank, watching her, and vainly trying to grab at any one of a thousand ideas that were dancing wildly through his brain. Yes, of course!–there had been a crash! He remembered, now. He had been driving the Rolls–when was it? Some time earlier in the evening, no doubt. And there was something about Egypt. Had someone been talking to him about Egypt? He could not capture this idea at all. As the empty glass was set down: โ€œPlease tell me,โ€ he asked, and found that he had already more control of his voice, โ€œdid I crash near here?โ€ โ€œSome little distance away,โ€ the nurse answered, resuming her seat and smoothing a white apron with sensitive fingers. Barry considered this reply for a long time. His brain was working with unfamiliar and amazing slowness. Then: โ€œWas I alone?โ€ he inquired. โ€œYou were alone in the car–yes.โ€ โ€œYou are sure there was no lady with me?โ€ โ€œQuite sure.โ€ โ€œThen how do I come to be here?โ€ โ€œYou were brought here by someone who found you.โ€ โ€œDo you mean a friend?โ€ Barry asked. And as he spoke an explanation came to him of that extraordinary pressure about his skull for which he had hitherto been unable to account. His head was tightly bandaged! โ€œI am afraid you are talking too much,โ€ the nurse said with gentle sternness. โ€œIt is contrary to Dr. Bartonโ€™s orders for me to allow you to talk. But I will answer your question. The man who brought you was a stranger, and his finding you a pure accident. And now please close your eyes and stop thinking about it.โ€ Barry smiled, and, in regard to closing his eyes, obeyed. But he did not stop thinking about it. He lay there endeavouring to capture those maddeningly elusive ideas which scampered about his mind like so many rabbits. Yes–he had crashed in the Rolls. He had been bound for New York. He remembered so much, clearly. He could not remember why he was bound for New York, nor from where; but New York had been his objective. He opened his eyes. โ€œHow was I dressed when I was brought in?โ€ he inquired. โ€œYou were wearing your dinner clothes,โ€ the nurse replied distinctly, raising her eyes from the book which she had resumed reading. โ€œPlease ask no more questions, because I shall be unable to answer them. In ten minutes I am going to turn the light out and leave you. So try to get to sleep.โ€ โ€œThank you,โ€ said Barry, and continued his reflections. He had been wearing his dinner clothes. Where on earth could he have been coming from? He opened his eyes, another point having occurred to him which might help to throw light upon the problem. But, slowly turning his head aside and noting the firm little chin of the girl as she bent over her book, he hesitated and did not ask the question. Nevertheless, he determined to remain awake until he had the facts in order. With which idea firmly in mind, he immediately fell asleep again. When next he awakened, morning sunlight flooded the room, and he saw, standing beside the white capped nurse, a cheery looking, gray haired man, having a very ruddy complexion. โ€œGood morning, Mr. Cumberland,โ€ said the cheery man in a cheery voice. โ€œGood morning,โ€ Barry replied–and, in the act of speaking, knew that he was himself again and that he had not been himself during those earlier conversations with the nurse. He raised his hand to his bandaged skull. It was singing and throbbing, but that curious dull pain had gone. โ€œMy name is Dr. Barton,โ€ the other went on. โ€œFeel better?โ€ โ€œRather!โ€ said Barry. โ€œWhat the deuce happened to me? Did I try to take a high jump or something?โ€ โ€œNot exactly,โ€ Dr. Barton replied, sitting on a rail at the end of the bed and addressing Barry over his shoulder. โ€œYou seem to have tried to climb a tree.โ€ Barry grinned feebly. โ€œHowโ€™s the Rolls looking?โ€ he inquired. โ€œThat I canโ€™t tell you,โ€ was the reply. โ€œI understand it has been towed to a garage some miles from here.โ€ But, even as he listened to Dr. Bartonโ€™s answer, Barryโ€™s mind had been actively at work. A phantom that had been haunting him took human shape. He recalled every circumstance that had led up to the accident. His smashed car ceased to interest him. His own condition became a very trivial matter. One thing, and one thing only, he wanted to know, and: โ€œI remember it all clearly,โ€ he said. โ€œI had lost my way. One point I must clear up.โ€ โ€œWell, get busy with it,โ€ the genial doctor directed, โ€œbecause we are going to have you out of bed, presently, and see how you feel on your feet.โ€ โ€œSplendid,โ€ Barry replied. โ€œWhat I want you to tell me is this: the exact spot at which the crash took place.โ€ Dr. Barton shook his head. โ€œI havenโ€™t the faintest idea!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry exclaimed. โ€œBut whoever brought me here must have known where he found me!โ€ โ€œNo doubt,โ€ Dr. Barton admitted, โ€œbut he didnโ€™t think it necessary to mention the fact.โ€ โ€œPerhaps you donโ€™t understand,โ€ Barry went on patiently, โ€œthat itโ€™s rather important. Could you possibly ring up this Good Samaritan and arrange for me to see him?โ€ โ€œWe could–if we knew his number.โ€ โ€œDidnโ€™t he leave it?โ€ โ€œHe left nothing!โ€ was the astonishing answer. โ€œHe drove you here in a Studebaker–it was a Studebaker, wasnโ€™t it, Nurse?โ€ The nurse confirmed his statement with a nod; and: โ€œIn a Studebaker,โ€ Dr. Barton continued, โ€œat somewhere around ten oโ€™clock. Dr. Perry was in charge and admitted you. You looked like a serious case, you understand. Youโ€™re not, but you looked like it. Who you were we found out from your cards, license, and what not. Then this dark horse in the Studebaker faded out.โ€ โ€œFaded out?โ€ Barry echoed. โ€œPrecisely!โ€ Dr. Barton inclined his head in solemn fashion. โ€œFaded out. He didnโ€™t leave so much as his best wishes.โ€ โ€œDo you mean you have no means of tracing him?โ€ โ€œNone whatever,โ€ the nurse assured him. โ€œDr. Perry told me he was a rough looking man. I was on duty that night. And no one was more surprised than Dr. Perry when we learned that he had driven off.โ€ โ€œYou see, it looked suspicious,โ€ Dr. Barton explained; โ€œand we have been manhandled by the police about it. I mean, there was nothing to show that you had not been assaulted and robbed.โ€ Barry stared at the speaker unseeingly. He was thinking again. โ€œWhoever towed my car to the garage,โ€ he mused aloud, โ€œwill tell me where I was found–or where the car was found.โ€ โ€œI am sorry,โ€ Barton declared, โ€œbut he wonโ€™t! The garage telephoned here the same night to say they had the car. We had a police officer on the premises at the time.โ€ โ€œWell?โ€ said Barry eagerly. โ€œA man driving a Studebaker towed the car in,โ€ Barton went on; โ€œsaid it was the property of Mr. Barry Cumberland and that Mr. Cumberland would settle with them for repairing it. Then he faded out.โ€ โ€œLeaving no name?โ€ โ€œLeaving no name.โ€ โ€œWas this last night?โ€ Dr. Barton glanced at the nurse, smiled, and then: โ€œIt was on Wednesday night,โ€ he returned. โ€œYou were semiconscious for forty eight hours! And now, stop talking. Iโ€™ve got my work to do. Stand by, Nurse.โ€ โ€œOne moment!โ€ Barry pleaded. โ€œMy father?โ€ โ€œYour father has been in constant touch. We advised him at once. He is downstairs now, waiting to see you.โ€ Chapter 3. A Week Later. โ€œShe might have stepped down from that painting!โ€ said Barry, pointing to a reproduction of part of a wall of the great temple at Medinet Habu, above the carven mantelpiece of the library. His father nodded and smiled, but not unkindly. He was strangely like his son, except that John Cumberlandโ€™s curly hair was gray and Barryโ€™s curly hair was brown. At the present moment Barry did not look his best, owing to the fact that a patch of the said curly hair was very neatly shaved and the corresponding portion of his skull decorated with unattractive surgical dressing. They both possessed fresh, healthy colouring and steadfast gray eyes. Both were virile, real, and would have been unusually handsome except that both had โ€œthe Cumberland nose,โ€ which was quite frankly tip tilted. But, in spite of it, there were many girls in New York who invariably referred to Barry Cumberland as good looking. And indeed he was, as his father still remained. No two men could have seemed more strangely out of place in this setting. John Cumberland might have passed for an old fashioned English squire; Barry was as typical a young man of to day–sane, fit, keen–as one could find anywhere in the English speaking world. Yet this library more closely resembled one of the Egyptian rooms at the British Museum than the favourite haunt of a prosperous man of affairs. Egypt–unaccountable though it appeared to his friends–was John Cumberlandโ€™s hobby; a hobby in which he had sunk a not inconsiderable fortune; in which he had sought, and ultimately found, it would seem, consolation for the loss of Barryโ€™s mother, who had died when Barry was seven years old. To day the Cumberland Collection ranked as the second finest of its kind in the United States. It was representative of Egyptian civilization in all its phases–save that it contained no mummies. It was not confined to the library, but overflowed into practically every room in the house. Yet nowhere were there any mummies. This was a concession to Aunt Micky, John Cumberlandโ€™s sister, who acted as the widowerโ€™s housekeeper and hostess. Whereas the loss of his wife had occasioned a wound to John Cumberlandโ€™s heart that only time had healed, the loss by his sister of the dissolute Count Colonna had left her a grateful if somewhat embittered woman. The later years of her married life had been years of hidden misery, during which she had realized to the full that, if she had married a title, Colonna had married a dowry. Time, however, had sweetened her even as it had healed her brother. She tasted the strange fruits of our modern orchard with astonishment but without dyspepsia, nevertheless firmly declining to remain under the same roof with a mummy. โ€œThis girl on the balcony seems to have made a tremendous impression upon you,โ€ said John Cumberland, keenly watching his son across the library table. โ€œI can never forget her,โ€ Barry declared; for between these two was that rare comradeship which makes secrets unnecessary. โ€œI donโ€™t mean that I have fallen in love at first sight, or anything ridiculous like that! But I have an intense curiosity to know who she is.โ€ โ€œYou are quite sure,โ€ his father went on, carefully selecting a cigar, โ€œthat the order of events was: the girl and the crash?–not the crash and the girl? You see what I mean, Barry? You have always had an interest in these things–โ€ he waved his cigar vaguely in the direction of the library walls–โ€œwhich I suppose I have encouraged. You had it in mind to get back here to supper, and so it is just possible—-โ€ โ€œI quite see what you mean,โ€ Barry interrupted: โ€œthat the girl on the balcony was the beginning of delirium after I had banged my head? Well, of course, itโ€™s impossible to explain how I know it, but you are wrong. I certainly saw her. And what adds to my certainty is the curious behaviour of the people who took care of me afterward. โ€œYou mean the man who brought you to the hospital and the one who towed your car to the garage?โ€ โ€œWhy, certainly!โ€ Barry replied. โ€œAs not a thing was stolen, either from me personally or out of the Rolls, why should these people have deliberately kept in the background?โ€ โ€œI see your point,โ€ said his father slowly; โ€œbut I rather think there was only one man concerned.โ€ โ€œI believe you are right,โ€ Barry agreed; โ€œand I believe that this man was acting for the girl I saw at the window!โ€ John Cumberland looked up, fumbling for his lighter. โ€œNow,โ€ he confessed, โ€œI donโ€™t entirely follow you.โ€ โ€œI mean, Dad,โ€ Barry explained excitedly, โ€œthat she must have seen me. She was looking at me. If I saw her, she certainly saw me!โ€ John Cumberland lighted his cigar. โ€œNow I begin to follow,โ€ he nodded. โ€œYou mean that she didnโ€™t want you to trace her?โ€ โ€œExactly!โ€ โ€œYou are sure she saw you? A flash of lightning such as you describe would have a very blinding effect.โ€ โ€œIt did,โ€ Barry admitted ruefully, โ€œin my case! But the crash took place less than twenty yards from the spot where she was standing.โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ his father mused; โ€œprobably you are right. You think that she sent this mysterious man with the Studebaker to your assistance, had you taken to the hospital in Elizabeth, and then had the Rolls towed to a distant garage, with the idea that you would be unable to find the spot later? Rather a hazard. How was she to know that you were unfamiliar with the neighbourhood?โ€ โ€œShe might have thought it worth a chance, at any rate.โ€ โ€œBut the object?โ€ John Cumberland exclaimed. โ€œWhat could be the object? Was she very inadequately dressed? I mean was she likely to feel ashamed of having been seen in such a condition?โ€ โ€œWhy, no,โ€ said Barry reflectively. โ€œShe was very strangely dressed, and, as far as that goes, scantily. But in these days that wouldnโ€™t upset her. Thereโ€™s some mystery about it–of this I am certain. To morrow I am going exploring. I wish you could come.โ€ โ€œUnfortunately I canโ€™t,โ€ was the reply. โ€œI have two important conferences. But if you go, let Hemingway drive you. You have had a devil of a knock on the head, my boy, and you shouldnโ€™t overtax yourself.โ€ Barry, however, had planned to go with Jim Sakers, who claimed to know the country like the palm of his hand. And on the following morning the two made an early start, beneath a cloudless sky which lent the towering buildings of New York an unfamiliar ethereal quality. Jim Sakers, in appearance and in temperament, was as different from Barry Cumberland as a Gruyรจre cheese is different from an ivory Buddha. He was dark and of a lovable ugliness; practical to a degree that his friend sometimes found irritating; invariably good humoured; and frankly ignorant of everything that could not be dealt with on Wall Street. An enthusiastic sportsman to whom the Arts were an awful mystery, he, withal, regarded the moody Barry more tenderly than Horatio looked upon Hamlet. Once extricated from the crossword puzzle of New Yorkโ€™s traffic and clear of Hobokenโ€™s shores, they began to make speed, Jim commenting continuously upon sights by the way, as was his manner, Barry answering only in monosyllables and being entirely wrapped up in his own thoughts. Presently: โ€œWhen we get to the house,โ€ he said, โ€œI propose to call.โ€ โ€œCheers!โ€ cried Jim. โ€œI hope the Egyptian princess keeps a good cellar. But what for?โ€ โ€œTo thank her for looking after me. I shall take it for granted that she did.โ€ โ€œWait until we find the house,โ€ Jim warned; โ€œand then, wait until we get in!โ€ Barry smiled lightly. โ€œOf course we shall find the house,โ€ he asserted. โ€œYou know the way, donโ€™t you?โ€ โ€œAbsolutely,โ€ Jim assured him, โ€œas far as the forks. I simply couldnโ€™t go wrong. But from there onward, I am entirely in your hands. You say you took the middle road?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ Barry nodded. โ€œThe middle one.โ€ He became lost in thought again, paying so little attention to his companionโ€™s cheery remarks that presently these ceased, as mile after mile was left behind and New York seemed to become very remote, in the peace of the countryside that they were traversing. And now, undaunted, Jim began to sing, loudly. โ€œโ€˜Dear one, the moon is waiting for the sunshine—-โ€™โ€ โ€œShut up!โ€ Barry implored. โ€œDonโ€™t sing. Or, if you must sing, sing the right words. It isnโ€™t โ€˜the moonโ€™–itโ€™s โ€˜the world.โ€™โ€ โ€œOh!โ€ Jim stared. โ€œI donโ€™t believe it. But, anyway, I like โ€˜the moonโ€™ better.โ€ โ€œThe tune is all wrong as well.โ€ โ€œYouโ€™re too blamed particular!โ€ said Jim. Engaged in this argument they came sweeping down a long, straight road, turned sharply to the right, and Jim pulled up. โ€œBehold!โ€ he cried, and pointed. Barry could not conceal his excitement. โ€œGad!โ€ he muttered. โ€œIt looks all different, now. But, yes, thatโ€™s the road.โ€ โ€œMiddle one, boss?โ€ โ€œYes.โ€ โ€œVery good, boss.โ€ Jim grinned cheerfully and swung around into the thoroughfare indicated. โ€œTell me when to stop, boss!โ€ he shouted. โ€œโ€˜Dear one, the moonโ€ฆโ€™โ€ He sang lustily, and inaccurately, for half a mile or more; until: โ€œHere we are! Left!โ€ Barry shouted. Jim obediently turned into the narrow way indicated by his companion, raced along it, and then: โ€œWhatโ€™s this?โ€ he exclaimed, and pulled up sharply. A barrier confronted them. โ€œWeโ€™ve got into a private road! And itโ€™s closed for repairs. Look!โ€ He pointed to the board which clearly stated this fact. โ€œItโ€™s been closed for a long time, too, from the look of it. Youโ€™ve muddled the contract, you poor nut!โ€ Barry sat staring blankly ahead. At last: โ€œTry back,โ€ he suggested. โ€œI canโ€™t make this out.โ€ Jim grunted, backed out to a gap, turned, and retraced the path to the high road. Slowing up: โ€œNow, boss,โ€ he demanded, โ€œwhat next? Whereโ€™s the princess?โ€ Barry, who had been sitting with knitted brows, looked up sharply. โ€œJim,โ€ he declared, โ€œthat was the right road–and it was open on the night I drove along it!โ€ โ€œWe might park the bus and walk,โ€ Jim suggested helpfully. โ€œNo,โ€ Barry replied; โ€œI donโ€™t feel fit enough. Besides—-โ€ โ€œWell?โ€ Jim prompted. โ€œWhy was the road closed? Thereโ€™s a mystery here, Jim, and I shall never solve it by blundering in like a bull at a fence.โ€ โ€œThen what do we do now, boss?โ€ Jim demanded. โ€œGo home!โ€ was the reply. โ€œRight!โ€ said Jim, and headed east for New York. โ€œOnce upon a time,โ€ he recited, in a loud singsong, โ€œthere was a princessโ€ฆโ€ Chapter 4. Shaded Windows. In the days that followed, Barry Cumberland resigned himself to waiting. He was soon practically fit again, however, and he made up his mind to employ his first morning of freedom in a methodical search for the scene of his accident. Working from the nearest base where he could garage the convalescent Rolls, he set out on foot; and in something less than half an hour had reached the barricaded road. He had come alone. Jim Sakersโ€™s open scepticism upon the subject to which he usually alluded as โ€œBarryโ€™s princessโ€ had begun to jar upon the victimโ€™s sensitiveness. He made a slight detour through close set trees and came out upon the private road twenty yards beyond. There was nothing to show that anything in the nature of repairs was taking place, and he proceeded confidently, looking about him in quest of some landmark. He found none. But presently an opening appeared on the left. Barry turned into it, pulled up, and suppressed a cry of triumph. Hitherto completely hidden by embracing woods, a house lay forty yards back from the road. Its grounds were surrounded by a high wall, and its construction was memorable because of a turret which crowned the easterly wing of the building. Barry stood watching it for a time, and groping for another memory which the sight of the house provoked, but which nevertheless eluded him. He realized from its situation that upon the southeast it must look sheerly down into a valley. When, and where, before, had he seen such a house? Try how he might he could not remember. Had he seen it in a dream? Surely he had looked down upon it from a great height! But when? Had the vision been prophetic–an omen? If so, an omen of what? He advanced slowly. He bent, studying the road and the unkempt shrubbery on his left. The track was altogether too deeply rutted to have retained any imprint by which the passage of his own tires could be identified. But now, in the very shadow of the building, he pulled up sharply, staring. There was a tree stump some four feet out from the wall, its bark newly gashed in a rather peculiar manner. The undergrowth about here, too, had an odd appearance. It was dying in patches. Stepping back to the middle of the road, he looked up across the wall. He found that he was staring directly at a window of the house beyond–a window before which a small balcony projected! He had made no mistake! Here it was–at this very spot–that he had crashed! Dr. Barton had been nearer to the truth than he knew when he had declared, โ€œYou seem to have tried to climb a tree.โ€ Exhilaration came. This provoking mystery was about to be solved. Passing along the entire length of the wall without coming to any gate, Barry reached the corner and looked across a sloping lawn beyond which stone steps led down to a sunken garden. Far below lay the bowl of the valley through which ran the high road to New York. A semicircular path swept around before the long, low porch of the house, which, as he immediately noted, appeared to be deserted. All visible windows were shaded. There was no evidence of life whatever about the premises. His hopes fell to zero. Stepping onto the porch, which looked very dusty and unswept, he pressed the bell and waited, lighting a cigarette. There was no response; not even the barking of a dog. A second and a third time he rang with equally negative results. The thing was growing more and more extraordinary. Since this road, now closed, clearly led to nowhere but the house, if he had imagined that figure of a girl at the window, by whom had he been taken to the hospital? Baffled, but not beaten, he walked down the steps again. He had noted a path which clearly led to a garden at the back–a garden concealed behind that high wall against which he had crashed. He turned into it, passed under the very window in which the girl had stood, and came out at the rear of this house of mystery. He paused in sight of the garden. Beside him was a door. It was partly open–and from beyond came an unmistakable sound of clattering pots and pans! Barry raised his hand and rapped sharply. The sounds ceased. A minute passed in silence. Barry rapped again, more loudly. The door was suddenly opened–so suddenly, he realized, that the woman who now stood before him must have crept forward to peep at the intruder. He found himself confronted by a truly formidable female, built for cargo rather than for speed. Her arms appeared to be wet to the elbows, and were, in the words of Jim Sakers, to whom Barry later gave an account of the interview, โ€œas per specification. See โ€˜Village Blacksmith,โ€™ page 1.โ€ Her muscular hands rested upon her hips. She was iron jawed, and her regard was a challenge. โ€œGood morning,โ€ he began. โ€œMy name is Barry Cumberland.โ€ The woman did not reply. โ€œI could get no answer to the bell,โ€ he went on, โ€œand came around in the hope of finding someone at home.โ€ โ€œThereโ€™s no one home but me.โ€ โ€œCan you tell me when they will be back?โ€ โ€œWho?โ€ โ€œWell–particularly the lady. The lady whom I really came to thank for her service—-โ€ โ€œSay it again.โ€ โ€œThe lady who witnessed an accident which took place outside this house two weeks ago.โ€ The Amazon stared in silence, until: โ€œForgive me,โ€ said Barry patiently, โ€œbut did you hear what I said?โ€ โ€œI heard.โ€ โ€œThen why donโ€™t you answer?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know what youโ€™re talking about.โ€ โ€œBut a lady does live here.โ€ โ€œDoes she?โ€ Barry was torn between laughter and indignation, but he feared an assault might follow any manifestation of either; therefore: โ€œI think I told you that my name was Barry Cumberland?โ€ he said in his most amiable manner. โ€œYou surely did.โ€ โ€œYou may have heard the name?โ€ โ€œYou said it twice.โ€ โ€œHang it all! At least you must know I mean no harm. I want to thank the owner of the house for taking care of me when otherwise I might have died on the roadside.โ€ โ€œThereโ€™s no one home.โ€ โ€œSo you have told me! But surely I can communicate with him somewhere? What is his name?โ€ โ€œBrown.โ€ โ€œBut there are so many Browns! What is his first name?โ€ โ€œJohn.โ€ Barry, stifling his rising anger, drew out a pocket case and pencil. Solemnly he noted the name โ€œJohn Brownโ€; then: โ€œAnd at what address can I write to Mr. Brown?โ€ he asked. โ€œI donโ€™t know. โ€œI mean, is it anywhere in America, or has Mr. Brown gone to Europe?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know.โ€ Apparently by accident, a ten dollar bill dropped from the case, and Barry held it out insinuatingly. Thereupon, with suddenly dilated nostrils, the formidable guardian of the empty mansion slammed the door in his face! He distinctly heard a bolt being shot. โ€œWell, Iโ€™ll be damned!โ€ said he. There are some situations from which retirement in good order is the only possible course; and Barry Cumberland recognized the fact that this was one of them. Returning his wallet to his pocket, he began to retrace his steps. โ€œWhat the devil does it mean?โ€ he muttered. Of the womanโ€™s antagonism there could be no doubt, nor of her loyalty to her employer. โ€œJohn Brown!โ€ Of course, it was a fabrication. She was lying, deliberately. Her instructions plainly were to give no information–and she had followed them to the letter. The object of it all defied his imagination, but he was more than ever certain that the girl at the window overlooking the garden had been real and no figment of delirium. As he walked slowly out to the road again, his mind was busy with possible theories. He had learned much but little. Suspicion created by the barred road was strengthened by what he had found at the house. For some unfathomable reason, the girl at the window and those associated with her were peculiarly anxious to avoid meeting him. But the longer he considered the problem, the more hopeless it became. He determined to consult the local real estate people, to endeavour to trace the ownership of the place, and to identify this โ€œJohn Brownโ€ who was so pointedly anxious to avoid him. Chapter 5. Barry Is Haunted. โ€œIn short,โ€ said Jim, โ€œthe princess may be described as still at large?โ€ โ€œShut up about โ€˜the princess,โ€™โ€ Barry retorted. โ€œAt least I have found out that the woman didnโ€™t lie. The house actually belongs to someone called John Brown.โ€ โ€œThen, in private life, the–the lady–must be a Miss or a Mrs. Brown. Not a romantic name. But what did the realty sportsman tell you about this mysterious citizen Brown?โ€ โ€œVery little. Said he had never seen him. And, for your enlightenment, there is no Mrs. Brown and no Miss Brown.โ€ โ€œOdder and odder. Have you thought that she may have been the daily help bound for a fancy dress orgy?โ€ โ€œI have not.โ€ โ€œWell, think about it. Sherlock Holmes would have thought about it at once. Another theory. Mr. Brown may be a bootlegger! A third theory—-โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t want to hear it!โ€ Jim Sakers looked at Barry reproachfully. โ€œYou are not tackling this thing in the light of pure reason,โ€ he protested. โ€œThe proper method is to think of every possible solution, jot ’em all down, and then pick out the right one.โ€ โ€œGo to blazes!โ€ said Barry. He had begun to cultivate a sort of New Jersey complex, and was forever driving out into the hills which had been the scene of his strange and unfortunate experience. One afternoon he drove as far as the club from which he had been returning when the accident had occurred. He had no particular purpose in view, beyond that of travelling over the now familiar route. The golf course was thickly dotted with players, but none of his intimate set seemed to be in the clubhouse or on the tennis courts. He smoked a reflective pipe on the veranda, watching long drives and short drives from the first tee, and then set out for home again. Rain threatened; indeed, was only checked by a high wind. And at a point in the descending road which seemed to be peculiarly familiar for some reason, he pulled up and sat staring as one who has seen an apparition. A long dormant memory awoke. Through a rift in the driving clouds sunlight poured suddenly upon a building halfway down the slope beneath, surrounded by high walls and having a curious turretlike structure at one corner! Good heavens! It was the house–her house; and he had first seen it under very similar conditions on the evening of his crash! The clouds swept on, and shadow came where there had been light–just as had happened before. He had not dreamed it, after all. But, nevertheless, his first glimpse of the building had been in the nature of an omen. Considering the fact that it lay a mile or more back from the main road, his subsequently coming to disaster under its very walls was at least an amazing coincidence. Automatically he took out his case and lighted a cigarette, all the time watching the mystery house nestling there far below in its enclosing gardens. Once he glanced away. It was to see what prospect offered of sunlight again flooding that part of the landscape. Even as he looked back, the desired effect came about. Some quality in the atmosphere seemed to bring out details very sharply; and the result was that effected by a reducing glass. He saw the house as through the lens of a camera. Smoke from his newly lighted cigarette rose before his eyes. Abruptly he tossed the cigarette away, and watched–watched; eagerly, fixedly. A tiny but clear cut figure in the distance, a girl moved in the walled garden! She appeared to be gathering flowers.โ€ฆ The shadow of a cloud crept across and across; until once more the picture was blotted out. Barryโ€™s heart gave a great leap. At crazy speed he swept down the valley road, taking one keen bend on two tires. Of his going he afterward remembered nothing. When, for the second time, he stepped upon the porch of โ€œJohn Brownโ€™sโ€ house, he recalled the remark of a girl he had once overheard: โ€œBarry Cumberland is picturesquely mad,โ€ she had said. โ€œShe was right,โ€ he reflected and pressed the bell. The place looked as it had looked before. All the windows were shaded. There was dust on the porch. No one answered his repeated ringing. In a state bordering upon stupefaction, he went to that side path which led to the garden. He found only a barred gate, at which he stared in unbelieving wonder. Beyond, he could see the door where he had held his interview with the unrelenting caretaker. But all around was silence. To day there was no rattling of pots and pans. Could it be, as his father had hinted, that imagination was playing tricks with him? Had the vision at the window indeed been the outcome of an injury, and was this phantom of the garden an aftermath of it–a second illusion–a mirage? Back along the ill kept road he walked to the barrier, where, heedless of possible loss, he had left the Rolls. What ailed him? Was he going mad? Was his interest in this house and its occupants due to frustrated curiosity? If so, did this fully explain his waking and sleeping dreams of a dark eyed girl in a cloudy robe, watching him from a high balcony? Barry was taking Aunt Micky to dine that evening at a restaurant on Forty seventh Street, which legitimately enjoyed the reputation of owning a good cellar. Jim Sakers was joining them, and bringing Jack Lorrimer. Jack was Barryโ€™s cousin. She was very pretty, having missed the Cumberland nose. Following dinner, they were going to see the most improper play on Broadway. The event was in honour of Aunt Micky, who occasionally indulged in what she termed โ€œa night of pure sin. Having dressed, Barry was sitting smoking in the library when she came down. He had been studying the figure of a slender priestess from the temple at Dendera. โ€œWell, young Cumberland,โ€ came a deep female voice, โ€œdreaming again?โ€ Barry turned–he was seated on the edge of the library table–and smiled at the speaker. Countess Colonna was a woman of medium height, sturdily built, and deep chested, as were all the Cumberlands. Her crisp gray hair was closely bobbed; her unflinching steel gray eyes looked out from under thick, dark eyebrows to tell the world that a dissolute husband had not crushed her spirit. She had been handsome in her youth. The Cumberland nose in a woman was not unattractive. Her dress was somewhat masculine, consisting of a smart dinner jacket with white silk waistcoat–the latter cut moderately low–a short black skirt, black silk stockings, and chic black shoes. That she had hitherto refrained from wearing trousers Barry regarded as a concession, for which he was duly grateful. โ€œHello, Micky,โ€ he said–โ€œall set?โ€ โ€œSurely,โ€ his aunt replied, lighting a very large cigarette and replacing the lighter in the pocket of her jacket. โ€œI have always avoided your speak easy, young Cumberland, because I donโ€™t want to be mixed up in a raid. But, as I donโ€™t care for whisky with dinner, I have fallen.โ€ โ€œSplendid,โ€ replied Barry, laughing. โ€œWe shall make you a complete sinner yet.โ€ โ€œI aim to be,โ€ said Aunt Micky, โ€œon my โ€˜night.โ€™ The night over, there isnโ€™t a better citizen in the United States than Michael Colonna.โ€ โ€œThere isnโ€™t a better sport in the world,โ€ added Barry affectionately. โ€œPity you never married again, Micky.โ€ โ€œDonโ€™t be a expletiveโ€™ fool!โ€ was the reply. As they came down the steps to the street: โ€œHello!โ€ said Barry, โ€œwhy have we got the big car?โ€ โ€œJohn has taken the other,โ€ his aunt replied. She wore a French cape, red lined, with which in the high wind she was struggling valiantly. โ€œWhere has he gone?โ€ Barry asked, as Hemingway held open the door of the car. โ€œHe is dining with the man Danbazzar,โ€ Aunt Micky answered, getting in. โ€œThat means heโ€™s spending money,โ€ Barry mused as he dropped down upon the seat beside her. โ€œWhat is it this time? A scarab or half the side of a temple?โ€ โ€œCanโ€™t say.โ€ His aunt shrugged her shoulders. โ€œDonโ€™t like Danbazzar. Fascinating man, but donโ€™t like him.โ€ โ€œOddly enough, I have never met him,โ€ Barry said. โ€œBut I know he has done business with Dad for years.โ€ Presently the car pulled up before an ordinary looking chop house, and Barry jumped out, helping Aunt Micky to alight. She stared in through the open windows, beyond which rows of tables might be seen, some already occupied; she glanced up at the signboard and looked into the narrow doorway. โ€œHardly Ritzy,โ€ she commented. โ€œNot to look at,โ€ Barry admitted. โ€œBut the wine is bon; so are the liqueurs.โ€ โ€œAh, well,โ€ his aunt mused, โ€œsin leads our footsteps into strange bypaths.โ€ They went in. Barry had reserved a table to which a very gentlemanly Irishman conducted them. โ€œHavenโ€™t my friends arrived, Pat?โ€ Barry inquired. โ€œNo, Mr. Cumberland. But you are a shade early.โ€ Barry glanced at his watch and then at the clock. โ€œYou are right,โ€ he agreed. โ€œWhat about two special cocktails?โ€ โ€œPrecisely,โ€ his aunt inquired, ignoring all offers of assistance and throwing her cavalry cloak across the back of a chair–โ€œprecisely what is a โ€˜special cocktailโ€™?โ€ โ€œIt is clearly indicated to night,โ€ Barry assured her. โ€œThen let it be brought,โ€ said Aunt Micky. The cocktails had just been served and Barry was studying the menu when Jim appeared in the open doorway, staring from table to table in quest of his party. Beside him stood a pretty girl wearing a very modern dance frock, a fragment of silvery gauze. Barry stood up, waving, and Aunt Micky shaded her eyes with her hand, a mannerism indicating disapproval. She drew a deep breath as the new arrivals approached, Jack Lorrimer observed of many observers. โ€œHโ€™m,โ€ she murmured–โ€œsilver currency coming in again. Young Lorrimer has a dollar in front, a dollar behind and no change. Barry, the girlโ€™s nude!โ€ โ€œShut up, Micky!โ€ said her embarrassed nephew. โ€œHello, Jack! Hello, Jim! They are bringing your cocktails.โ€ When everyone was seated, Aunt Micky shaded her eyes again, surveying Jack from shingled nut brown hair downward to the table edge. โ€œAre you liking my frock,โ€ the girl asked, โ€œor hating it?โ€ โ€œNeither,โ€ was the reply. โ€œI am looking for it.โ€ Jim applauded softly, and Jack turned to Barry for sympathy, leaning forward so that two curly heads were very close together. โ€œDo you see anything wrong with me?โ€ she pleaded. Jim watched in tragic disapproval, then rested his hand upon Aunt Mickyโ€™s shoulder. โ€œLook at them!โ€ he said–โ€œadmired, self satisfied–pink and white. Micky, we brunettes must hang together!โ€ The dinner turned out a great success. Aunt Micky followed a routine on these occasions: drinking red wine because of its pleasing resemblance to blood, eating a prodigious quantity of celery, taking the blue plate item in the menu regardless of its constitution, and winding up with rum omelette in flames, because it was โ€œso hellish.โ€ The notorious play bored her. โ€œI am going home to read in bed,โ€ she declared, as they waited outside the theatre for the car. โ€œI shall read The Sorrows of Satan, by Marie Corelli. โ€ They dropped her at the Cumberland town house, an old fashioned mansion in one of those sections of the big city where a few historic families still linger. A tired looking person was smoking a slightly used cigar and supporting the iron post which decorated a neighbouring corner. As the door closed and Barry came down to reรซnter the car, the weary man saluted him. โ€œBloated capitalist,โ€ Jim murmured; โ€œliving in constant terror of the honest but starving burglar. Your wretched treasures guarded night and day by detectives—-โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ said Barry, laughing, and directing Hemingway through the tube. โ€œIt seems funny to me. Because I canโ€™t imagine the most hard working burglar staggering away with a couple of hundred weights of granite sphinx on his back.โ€ โ€œI much prefer the detectiveโ€™s life,โ€ Jim continued irrepressibly. โ€œThe detectiveโ€™s life is the life for me. โ€˜All forms of shadowing undertaken. Divorce and blackmail our specialties. Order your armed guards by telephone. One to five thousand–in uniform–at a momentโ€™s notice. Our watchword: Shoot to Kill. Telegraphic address: Confidence, New Yorkโ€™—-โ€ โ€œFor the love of Mike,โ€ Jack implored, โ€œbe quiet for five minutes!โ€ The car threaded its way through Fifth Avenue, and, at the very moment of its turning into that thoroughfare sacred to prohibitive prices, a traffic signal checked them. A French limousine shot past ahead, its occupants clearly visible. They were two; and as the man was seated on the off side, Barry had never a glimpse of his features. But the girl wore a curious black veil, of a fashion neither Oriental nor Spanish. She had apparently just raised it, but dropped it again swiftly on seeing another car so near. Yet she failed to veil quickly enough to prevent Barry obtaining a glimpse of her face. He uttered a loud cry. To the astonishment of his friends–even Jim was silenced–he wrenched open the door and leaped out into the street! He ran three or four paces and stood there like a madman, right in the traffic fairway, glaring after the retreating car! Its number was indistinguishable. He turned, staring back at Hemingway, who was regarding him with deep concern. โ€œAm I really going mad?โ€ he muttered. The girl in the car was the girl of the balcony! Chapter 6. Danbazzar. The abstracted mood of Barry during the remainder of the evening was too noticeable to pass without comment. His dance partner, Naomi, a girl friend of Jackโ€™s grew very petulant, until Jack was really sorry for her. This wouldnโ€™t have mattered, but Jack showed it. Whereupon Naomi became furious. Barry knew that he would not lack successors, however, for a lot of their crowd were there, and Naomi was what Jim termed โ€œa star looker.โ€ Accordingly he excused himself early on some imaginary pretext and started for home. He had let Hemingway go, and he taxied back. He longed for the solitude of his own room–for reflection. He wanted to argue this thing out with himself once and for all. He wanted to know if he had been purposely mystified by the occupants of the hillside house, or whether he was succumbing to a delusion. This he must determine, for his highly sensitive nature demanded it. The family physician had warned him that the blow to his skull had been a severe one, and that he must on no account overtax his brain for at least a year to come. Somewhat belatedly he began to take this warning to heart. Had it been a covert intimation that he was threatened with insanity? The detective on duty at the corner saluted him again as he discharged the taxi. Jim Sakersโ€™s words returned to his mind while he fumbled for a key. He remembered too that his father had advocated a long vacation abroad. What did this mean? Should he regard it as confirming his worst theories? Or did his father suspect that there was some deep plot afoot? Reared from childhood in an atmosphere of luxury, he had never hitherto appreciated, in all its significance, the fact that he was the son of a millionaire. As he was passing the library he heard voices; one of them unmistakable, the other deep, resonant–equally unfamiliar. John Cumberland as a rule retired early, and Barry paused, wondering whom this late visitor might be. Curious, he rapped and opened the door. He looked down the long rectangular room. The Cumberland library was one of the acknowledged โ€œsightsโ€ of New York, but to Barry it was a commonplace. It was lined with relics of that wonderful civilization which flourished under the Pharaohs. Its very atmosphere was reminiscent of the Nile land, of the indescribable smell of Egypt. His father was seated in the big armchair, looking up at a wall painting from Medinet Habu. Facing him, and seated on a corner of the library table–a favourite perch of Barryโ€™s–was a man of arresting appearance. He was in dinner kit, but in lieu of the more regular black bow displayed a stock. His hair, brushed back from a fine brow, was silver gray; his head leonine; the pale chiselled features were of Moorish severity. He wore a short moustache and a small tuft beneath his lower lip, of that kind once known as an imperial. He was built massively, imposingly. His eyes, which at Barryโ€™s entrance had turned in the direction of the door, were light brown and, in their piercing regard, resembled the eyes of an animal. He stood up, revealing his height, which Barry estimated to be more than six feet. โ€œHello, Barry!โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œGlad you looked in. I should like you to meet Mr. Danbazzar.โ€ Danbazzar raised his hand in a slow, majestic movement, and: โ€œI am delighted to meet Mr. Barry Cumberland,โ€ he replied, and his voice possessed a deep organ note. โ€œBut you forget, Mr. Cumberlandโ€–turning to the elder man–โ€œthat I lay no claim to the title of Mister. I am Danbazzar; neither Danbazzar Esquire, Sir Danbazzar, nor Lord Danbazzar; merely Danbazzar.โ€ He came forward, extending his hand. โ€œMr. Barry Cumberland, I hope you and I will be friends, as your father and I have been for many years.โ€ Half attracted, half repelled, Barry took the extended hand–and experienced a mighty grip, which greatly reassured him. He smiled. โ€œYou can be sure of it, Mr.–I beg your pardon–Danbazzar,โ€ he returned. โ€œI heard voices. That was why I came in.โ€ Danbazzar inclined his head graciously and placed a chair. โ€œPerhaps you would like to sit here?โ€ he said. โ€œWe are discussing a matter upon which I think your father would welcome your views.โ€ Barry sat down, and: โ€œIs that so, Dad?โ€ he asked. โ€œWhatโ€™s the big argument?โ€ โ€œThereโ€™s no argument, Barry,โ€ was the reply; โ€œthere isnโ€™t room for any. Itโ€™s a proposition, and itโ€™s up to me to say Yes or No.โ€ โ€œPrecisely,โ€ Danbazzar murmured; and resumed his seat upon the corner of the library table. He had an odd trick of tensing and then relaxing his lips. He did it now, looking from the older to the younger man. Then, from a box upon the table, he selected a cigarette, lighted it, and reflectively blew a puff of smoke toward the dancers and other ladies of Pharaohโ€™s golden court displayed upon the wall above him. Barry, his mind full of his own affairs, settled down rather reluctantly to listen. โ€œI am afraid this is going to be right over my head,โ€ he confessed. โ€œBut itโ€™s bound to be interesting, so fire away. What is it all about?โ€ Danbazzar waved his cigarette in the direction of John Cumberland, and the latter, smiling, replied: โ€œItโ€™s a deal in Egyptian antiquities, Barry, as no doubt you surmise. But in a new kind of antiquity–different from any Danbazzar has ever offered me before; different in every way.โ€ โ€œYou are right,โ€ boomed the deep voice. โ€œNo such proposition has been made to any living man, I should guess, since the days of Rameses the Ninth.โ€ Danbazzar imparted a quality of awe to this extraordinary statement which was not without its effect upon Barry. He found himself studying the large, well shaped hand holding a lighted cigarette and discovered a curious fascination in a little scarab ring on the fourth finger. As one does upon meeting a man of whom one has heard much, he endeavoured to sum up his impressions of Danbazzar and to compare the result with what he had hitherto learned about him. He was reputed to be the agent of an individual or a syndicate in Egypt, and it was rumoured that his activities had more than once attracted official attention. Certainly, he had been the medium through which many rare antiquities had reached collections of wealthy connoisseurs, and indeed, more than one public institution. John Cumberlandโ€™s museum had been enriched by not a few items obtained in this way. And since the export of such antiques was contrary to the laws of the Egyptian government, and their importation subject to a heavy tax by that of the United States, it was only reasonable to suppose that Danbazzar was a smuggler. But he was master of his subject, a fact to which the names of his patrons testified. His nationality was unknown. โ€œIt is some years since we have met,โ€ John Cumberland pursued, โ€œOn the last occasion, if I remember rightly, you brought me—-โ€ He pointed to a very beautiful enamelled casket enclosed in a glass case. โ€œCorrect,โ€ Danbazzar nodded. โ€œThere are only two of that period in existence, and the other is in the Louvre. I had the honour to supply it to France, as I told you at the time of our deal.โ€ โ€œYes, I remember,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œAnd now, Barry–โ€ turning to his son–โ€œI have been given first refusal of a proposition which, if it matures, will win me a place among the real Egyptologists; let me in on the ground floor, in fact.โ€ Danbazzar raised his hand, checking the speaker. โ€œOne moment, Mr. Cumberland,โ€ he interrupted, and turned to Barry, fixing upon him a penetrating glance from his extraordinary eyes. โ€œYou quite understand that what you are about to hear must not be mentioned in any shape or form to anyone now outside this room?โ€ โ€œQuite,โ€ said Barry, almost startled by the intensity of the speakerโ€™s gaze. โ€œYou may rely upon me.โ€ He glanced at his father, and realized that he was labouring under the influence of intense excitement. His voice, his colour, his movements betrayed him. Enthusiastic though John Cumberland had always been upon this subject, Barry could never remember to have seen him quite so roused before. He felt, suddenly, that he stood upon the verge of something momentous. The shadow of Ancient Egypt at last was reaching out to touch him. He experienced a momentary shrinking, followed by a thrill of anticipation, communicated, possibly, from father to son. โ€œI have seen a papyrus to night, Barry,โ€ John Cumberland went on, โ€œwhich even my limited study of the subjectโ€–he acknowledged with a smile Danbazzarโ€™s gesture of denial–โ€œshows me to be unique. You shall see it presently, if you wish–that is, with my friendโ€™s consent.โ€ Consent was given in a gracious gesture. โ€œIt may mean little to you, but it has meant much to me. I foresee that reproductions of it will occupy a place in the library of every student of Egyptology. It will be more sought after than the Papyrus Harris, or the Papyrus Ebers. The discovery of the Rosetta Stone, itself, will almost be dwarfed by the publication of the Danbazzar Papyrus—-โ€ โ€œMr. Cumberland!โ€ Danbazzarโ€™s voice broke in imperiously. โ€œYou have heard my proposition with all its conditions. If you accept them, the papyrus shall be known as the โ€˜Cumberland Papyrus.โ€™ Upon this I insist. It is no more than your due. By your efforts its authenticity must be established.โ€ โ€œA minor point,โ€ John Cumberland assured him. โ€œMy share will be that of a backer. You are the discoverer.โ€ โ€œNot of the sarcophagus,โ€ was the reply. โ€œThis has yet to be discovered, and can only be discovered by your help.โ€ โ€œTremendously thrilling!โ€ said Barry, standing up restlessly and lighting a fresh cigarette; โ€œbut, as I expected, right over my head. Does it mean a job of exploration or something?โ€ โ€œIt does,โ€ said his father, looking at him. โ€œMight I take a peep at this papyrus?โ€ Danbazzar bowed gravely, and from the other side of the library table took up a large portfolio having double locks. He opened it carefully and spread out a stained fragment, some three feet in length, part of which was clearly missing and other parts of which were defaced by curious stains. It bore rows of figures of a type quite familiar to Barry, but nevertheless meaningless, and some of the colouring retained much of its original freshness. It seemed to deal with the inevitable subject of burial, but upon one figure, perfectly preserved, he fastened his gaze as if hypnotized. It was that of a slender girl, more delicately drawn than any he ever remembered to have seen. But that which held him enthralled was the resemblance, the uncanny resemblance, of this figure to the girl of the balcony. Allowing for the conventional methods of the ancient artist, it might have been her portrait! He heard Danbazzar speaking. โ€œMy own translation is here,โ€ he was saying, indicating a manuscript which he held in his hand. โ€œI have asked your father to have it checked by any two authorities he may select. But the theory that I have based upon this is the point that will interest you.โ€ โ€œIt will startle you out of your life!โ€ John Cumberland interjected. Barry looked up. โ€œWhat is the theory?โ€ he asked, looking from face to face. โ€œThe theory is,โ€ Danbazzar replied, โ€œthat unless some unforeseen accident occurs, or has already occurred, we shall shortly be in a position to learn some of the secrets of Ancient Egypt from the lips of one who lived there!โ€ Chapter 7. Zalithea. โ€œI should be glad,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œif you would just run over the main facts again for Barryโ€™s benefit.โ€ Danbazzar inclined his head in that courtly manner which was his and glanced aside at the younger man. โ€œQuite so,โ€ Barry agreed. His original purpose was forgotten, for here apparently was an even deeper mystery than that which had been puzzling him. โ€œAt the moment I simply donโ€™t know what to make of it all, so please start right at the beginning.โ€ Danbazzar took up a position before the mantelpiece. Barry could not help thinking that the background suited the figure. The man had the majestic presence of a Pharaoh. โ€œThe facts,โ€ he began, speaking slowly and impressively and emphasizing his statements with graceful and unfamiliar gestures, โ€œare of a sort which you would be justified in doubting if you met them in a Sunday newspaper. My reputation, though, gives them a greater value. But in spite of a life devoted to these subjects, Iโ€™m not infallible, and I wonโ€™t consent to go any further, as I have already told you, Mr. Cumberlandโ€–turning in the latterโ€™s direction–โ€œuntil two other opinions have been taken.โ€ โ€œYour proposal is fair and reasonable,โ€ was the reply; โ€œand I have already agreed to it.โ€ โ€œVery well!โ€ Danbazzar resumed. โ€œThe story starts from five years ago, when I was paying one of my periodical visits to Egypt, and when I discoveredโ€–he pointed–โ€œthis papyrus. I wonโ€™t bore you with particulars of how it came into my possession as Mr. John Cumberland has these already. Nor can I account for its presence in the place where it was found. Enough to say that I recognized it to be genuine and immediately set to work to decipher it. I tried to restore, as far as possible, those parts which had become defaced. โ€œA first glance had shown me that it was not the ordinary ritual buried with most mummies. A very short study proved that is was unique–unique in every way–and that it dated from the latter part of the reign of Seti the First.โ€ โ€œWhen did he reign?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œRoughly, about thirteen hundred and sixty years before Christ!โ€ โ€œGood heavens!โ€ Barry stared again at the fragment with its amazing freshness of colouring; โ€œthen this thing is something over three thousand two hundred years old?โ€ โ€œPrecisely,โ€ Danbazzar nodded. โ€œIn other words, it dates from a time when the art of mummifying human bodies had reached a very high state of perfection. One day, perhaps very soon, you will see the mummy of Seti himself in the Cairo Museum. You will never forget the majesty of his features preserved by that lost art for over three thousand years. I mention the fact of the high development of the art of the mummy maker at this period, because the contents of the papyrus show that this had been achieved by long years of study, and that even more extraordinary results were looked for by a certain group of students closely associated with Pharaohโ€™s court. โ€œI found it to consist of two parts. The first, fortunately, almost complete, the second, as you see, with a great part missing. How much is missing I canโ€™t even surmise, but I should say that from this pointโ€–he bent forward and laid a long finger upon the papyrus–โ€œto the end where it is torn covers a period of some two hundred and eighty years. It bears the names, or as we should say, the signatures, of six generations of priests. โ€œThe first and shorter part, written toward the end of Setiโ€™s reign, if Iโ€™m not mistaken, states that in accordance with the wishes of a certain learned high priest of the Temple of Amen Ra at Thebes and with the consent of Pharaoh, an attempt was made to prove that not only the physical frame but human life itself could be preserved indefinitely under peculiar conditions.โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry exclaimed incredulously–โ€œthat a living person could be mummified and remain alive?โ€ โ€œThis priest,โ€ Danbazzar replied, โ€œreferred to in the papyrus–his name would mean nothing to you–believed that he had perfected a process for accomplishing this! It was all an outcome of that peculiar egotism which belonged to the Ancient Egyptians. And in this way, no doubt, he interested Pharaoh in his experiments. โ€œYou get what I mean? The statues and records which had preserved for posterity the principal events of earlier reigns werenโ€™t good enough to tell coming ages of the greatness of Seti the First! To his glory a living witness should be left behind to testify to the ancient grandeur of Egypt. This is stated at the beginning of the papyrus, which then goes on to relate that a beautiful captive, attached to the person of the Queen, was selected for this high honour.โ€ โ€œHigh honour!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œYou mean she was selected to be put to death!โ€ Danbazzar smiled slightly. โ€œAs it is stated that she was of great beauty and bodily perfection,โ€ he admitted, โ€œit is just possible that an element of jealousy entered into this selection. At any rate, for whatever reason, this girl was chosen, and she is referred to in the writing as Zalithea, a Princess of Unu, taken captive in the wars of Seti. As Egyptologists have never succeeded in identifying this island of Unu, we canโ€™t even guess at the nationality of Zalithea. But she possibly came from the neighbourhood of Cyprus. โ€œNow–โ€ he paused, raising his finger–โ€œthe nature of the process by which this suspension of life was induced, and that by which it was to be ended, or the subject awakened, is not mentioned. This papyrusโ€–he lowered his finger and pointed again–โ€œis no more than a brief statement of the fact that, in accordance with the wishes of Pharaoh, Princess Zalithea was selected for this high honour and laid in a certain tomb under the guardianship of a group of priests appointed as custodians. โ€œCertain funds were set aside for the upkeep of the small temple attached to the tomb, and one of the most extraordinary experiments ever attempted by man had begun. โ€œBut,โ€ Barry objected, โ€œwhile Iโ€™m not in a position to dispute the genuineness of this writing, itโ€™s–well, what shall I say?–itโ€™s really a nightmare–the dream of a madman–who unfortunately had power enough to carry it out and condemn this poor girl to a living death! Thank God we live in an age of real civilization!โ€ His father caught his eye, and: โ€œDonโ€™t judge until you have heard all the facts,โ€ he said. โ€œThe civilization of Ancient Egypt was more real, and higher, than you appreciate.โ€ โ€œThat is true,โ€ Danbazzar resumed, unmoved by Barryโ€™s criticism, โ€œas the second part of the papyrus bears out. This roughly covers the reigns of seven kings. In the ages that have since gone by time has reduced the whole of the papyrus to a more or less uniform colour. In fact, some of the earlier colouring is brighter than the later, but hereโ€–he stepped forward to the table–โ€œwe move from somewhere around 1365 up to somewhere about 1200 B.C. It was the duty of the priests, to which they were sworn, to examine the sleeping Zalithea at certain periods which I estimate to have been fifty years apart.โ€ โ€œYou mean to awaken her?โ€ Barry demanded. โ€œSurely!โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œThey were entrusted with a certain formula by means of which, in the belief of its inventor, the sleeping woman could be aroused from her trance. It was their duty at specific dates to record the results. Here we have five such records, covering a period of some two hundred and fifty years, as I estimate. Each, as you see, is confined within a ruled space, and every one is undoubtedly the work of a different scribe and possesses recognizable characteristics of the period in which it was written. Each also bears what we may term the signature of the chief priest in office at the time, and the accounts, while the wording varies slightly, all tally. The last, or the last to be preserved, states as the others state, and is attested by three witnesses, priests of the temple, that at this time the Princess Zalithea was still living!โ€ โ€œGood God!โ€ Barry exclaimed. โ€œIt simply isnโ€™t credible! Donโ€™t misunderstand me! I am not doubting your translation or the genuineness of the thing! But there must be some mistake!โ€ โ€œYou are entitled to suppose so,โ€ Danbazzar admitted. โ€œIt was because I supposed so myself that I allowed several years to elapse before making the proposition that I have made to night to your father. During those years I have not been idle. A trusted agent of mine in Egypt, working upon such information as I could give him, had been searching–secretly, of course–and twelve months ago his search was rewarded.โ€ โ€œWhat was he searching for?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œHe was searching for the tomb of Zalithea! You see, it would be unlikely to attract the attention of the ordinary excavator, its historical importance being slight–except in relation to this papyrus.โ€ โ€œDo you mean that he found it?โ€ Barry demanded amazedly. โ€œHe found it!โ€ Danbazzar replied. โ€œThere is such a tomb!โ€ โ€œDo you understand, Barry?โ€ said John Cumberland excitedly. โ€œDo you understand what this may mean?โ€ Barry in bewilderment looked from his father to Danbazzar and then stared down at the papyrus on the table. โ€œI worked on it all last winter,โ€ Danbazzar went on quietly. โ€œI opened a way in–and I found myself checked by a great stone portcullis.โ€ โ€œYou mean,โ€ said Barry dazedly, โ€œyou spent last winter in Egypt, actually excavating?โ€ โ€œActually on the job! I got away with murder. I had no permit to dig. But Iโ€™ve explained my system to your father. Iโ€™d hoped to go back this season; but funds wonโ€™t allow. Itโ€™s going to be ruinously expensive to complete that excavation. But the man who does complete it will make a name for himself.โ€ โ€œIf,โ€ John Cumberland went on, โ€œshe remained alive for three hundred years, Barry, why not for three thousand?โ€ โ€œBut, Dad,โ€ said Barry, โ€œthis is raving lunacy!โ€ โ€œIt seems so,โ€ Danbazzar admitted gravely; โ€œbut five generations of learned men whose names we have here testify to the fact. Are we to assume that they were all liars? If so, with what object did they lie? I found the tomb–unopened, untouched!โ€ But Barryโ€™s attention had wandered again, and the words reached him but vaguely. He was staring intently at the graceful figure in the papyrus which aroused such strange memories. And now, turning to Danbazzar, and resting his finger upon that part of the record: โ€œWhat does this mean?โ€ he asked. โ€œIs it a symbol?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ was the reply. โ€œYou will notice on the right of the figure what looks like a cartouche. I have been unable to identify it, though. Translated, it means, โ€˜She Who Sleeps but Who Will Awaken.โ€™ For this reason I take the figure to be a portrait of the Princess Zalithea.โ€ Chapter 8. Special Opinions. โ€œThe last time the man Danbazzar was about,โ€ said Countess Colonna, โ€œthe result was that a motor lorry and ten men arrived. The front doors were taken off their hinges and a stone figure as big as the Statue of Liberty was carried into the library.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t think it will happen this time, Micky,โ€ Barry assured her. โ€œI hope not,โ€ was the reply. โ€œI donโ€™t like Danbazzar. I always imagine him living in a harem.โ€ โ€œI havenโ€™t met the sportsman,โ€ said Jim Sakers, โ€œbut I am going to crash into the University Club to night and look him over keenly. If I donโ€™t approve, Barry, I shanโ€™t hesitate to advise you to drop him. On the other hand, I may be favourably impressed. And as is only fair to him, if this should prove to be the case, I shall relieve your mind at once and let you know.โ€ โ€œThanks,โ€ Barry replied. โ€œI shall be in a frightfully unsettled state until I have your opinion.โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s quite natural,โ€ Jim agreed; โ€œbut I promise not to keep you in suspense.โ€ โ€œIt occurs to me, young Sakers,โ€ Aunt Micky broke in, โ€œthat you and I are being deliberately kept in the dark about this thing. Young Cumberland here has a secret eye. Itโ€™s his left!โ€ Barry laughed. โ€œYou hit the nail on the head, Micky,โ€ he admitted. โ€œDanbazzar has come across with a proposal about which I have promised to say nothing. Itโ€™s a very queer business–more than queer, in fact; but to night I shall know more about it. Dad has invited him to join us at the University Club with Dr. Rittenburg of the Smithsonian, Horace Pain, the big Oriental man, and Dadโ€™s old friend, Dr. Blackwell of Yale.โ€ โ€œWhat a wild party!โ€ Jim commented. โ€œI suppose you are going on to the Earl Carroll Vanities after dinner?โ€ โ€œOn the contrary,โ€ Barry assured him, โ€œwe are going on to Danbazzarโ€™s place.โ€ โ€œYou canโ€™t delude me,โ€ cried Jim scornfully. โ€œI see Dr. Rittenburg and Professor Blackwell dancing far into the small hours of the morning in some small but costly cabaret. I can see you all, haggard eyed, flushed with wine, a really shocking Six, taking breakfast at Childโ€™s on Fifth Avenue as the morning sun peeps in upon the end of your debauch. Barry, Iโ€™m sorry, but you are making the pace too fast.โ€ The dinner turned out more successful, however, than Jim had predicted. Barryโ€™s father had never before so taken him into his confidence in regard to this hobby of his life, and under different circumstances he would certainly have come prepared to be bored. As it chanced, the company proved to be so amusing that he was amazed to find how quickly the time passed. Horace Pain, the celebrated Orientalist, was all that he had expected of him; a dry, slow spoken scholar, whose only enthusiasm was for his subject. But Dr. Rittenburg proved to be a comedian who would have rejoiced Jimโ€™s heart. He was a round little man–a study in curves. His red face was round, his bald head was round, and he wore very round glasses. He and Professor Blackwell succeeded in keeping the party in a state of continuous laughter; for Professor Blackwell, tall, gaunt, and saturnine, had a fund of wit, as Barry knew, which seemed to be inexhaustible. Danbazzar, too, was a delightful companion. There seemed to be few spots in the world, civilized or uncivilized, that he had not visited, from the headwaters of the Amazon to the monasteries of Thibet. The real purpose of the meeting was not touched upon, however, until the party had adjourned to the library of the club. Here, as they took their seats in an alcove, Barry observed Jim. Faithful to his promise, he had โ€œcrashed in.โ€ With an exaggerated air of secrecy, based upon the Charlie Chaplin tradition, he crept around the gallery above, turning his back swiftly whenever one of the party looked up, and apparently searching for some book which he always failed to find. Crouching low behind the rails, so that only the top of his head and his eyes were visible, he peered down intently. This amazing piece of pantomime was only interrupted by the decision of the party to adjourn serious discussion to Danbazzarโ€™s apartment. But, as they quitted the club and got into John Cumberlandโ€™s big car which waited outside, Jim Sakers, his face buried in an evening paper, hat brim pulled down over scowling features, stood beside the steps watching intently. Danbazzarโ€™s apartment, Barry had always been given to understand, contained a number of literally priceless objects, every one unique and irreplaceable, and any one of which he could have sold over and over again for incredible sums. Used to the orderly neatness of his fatherโ€™s collection, he came prepared to find something similar, although probably on a smaller scale. The address proved to be situated amid some of the loudest noises of New York. He had thought vaguely, before, that it was an odd spot to live in. But he had not allowed for the fact that Danbazzar lived on the roof. Here, like a priest of Bel, high above all the buildings surrounding him, Danbazzar from a cloudy silence looked down upon teeming streets, thousands of lighted windows, dwarfed sky signs. His apartment was virtually a bungalow from the porch of which one stepped into a sort of Japanese garden, with flowering vines and tortuous, spiny cacti. A large pond was approached through a loggia and peopled by golden carp. From little arbours around the wall one might look down upon a muted New York. An Arab servant, who apparently knew not one word of English, attended upon the guests; and presently they entered a large, low room, in which the famed collection was housed. Here, Barry had a shock. The value of the statuettes, vases, mummies, caskets, items of jewellery, and other nameless relics of Egypt he could not dispute. But instead of being formally lined up in wall cases and cabinets, they were littered about the place in the utmost confusion. A magnificently painted sarcophagus had been converted into a cupboard to contain bottles of Scotch whisky, old brandy, champagne, and other material comforts. Cigar butts disfigured the polished floor. There were books and papers lying about anywhere and everywhere. The effect was that of a second hand dealerโ€™s establishment in which somebody had been trying to rope a steer. He was unable to conceal his amazement, and: โ€œDid you ever see anything like it, Barry?โ€ his father said, speaking in a low voice. โ€œNever!โ€ he confessed. โ€œAre these things really valuable?โ€ โ€œValuable!โ€ exclaimed Dr. Rittenburg, who stood near. โ€œThere is a fortune in this room.โ€ Danbazzar cleared a space upon a large table and set out the papyrus. โ€œNow, gentlemen,โ€ he said in his courtly manner, โ€œlet us get to the business of the evening. I have given you, Dr. Rittenburg, and you, Mr. Pain, an opportunity of examining and testing this piece of writing. I await your opinion.โ€ โ€œI have anticipated it,โ€ said John Cumberland, in a voice that betrayed suppressed excitement. Horace Pain removed the cigar from between his teeth, cleared his throat, and: โ€œI know Professor Rittenburgโ€™s opinion,โ€ he said, โ€œand he knows mine. The papyrus is undeniably genuine. It has points of resemblance to the Turin Papyrus which I shall presently point out, as I have already pointed them out to my friend Dr. Rittenburg. Respecting the claims of its writer, or writers, I shall have nothing to say. This is outside my province. As, I take itโ€–turning to John Cumberland–โ€œit is outside yours? I mean, your interest, like mine, is in the writing itself, not in what it states.โ€ โ€œPartly,โ€ John Cumberland replied, glancing swiftly in Danbazzarโ€™s direction. โ€œWell,โ€ Pain went on, in his dry, hard voice, โ€œI mean to say that a parallel is the medical papyrus in Berlin. No one would think of making up a prescription from it. You agree with me, Professor?โ€–turning in the direction of Professor Blackwell. โ€œI agree with you entirely,โ€ was the reply. โ€œIt contains among other things a prescription for a hair restorer which, I will guarantee, would turn Paderewski bald in a fortnight.โ€ โ€œExactly,โ€ Dr. Rittenburg agreed. โ€œI look upon this business of the sleeping Princess as a sort of religious ritual, Cumberland, similar to the worship of the Apis Bull–only kept up for political reasons to delude the people, and to preserve the immortal name of Seti. Something of that kind.โ€ โ€œQuite beside the point, gentlemen,โ€ Danbazzarโ€™s deep voice broke in. โ€œThe fact that the papyrus is genuine and, in your opinion, dates from the time of the Pharaoh mentioned in it is the thing of interest to Mr. Cumberland and to myself.โ€ โ€œOf this I am certain.โ€ Dr. Rittenburg nodded his round head vigorously. โ€œSo am I,โ€ Horace Pain admitted. โ€œOf course, its publication will create a profound sensation, and the museums of the world will outbid one another to get it.โ€ โ€œThey will bid in vain,โ€ Danbazzar replied. โ€œMr. John Cumberland has acquired it.โ€ โ€œAh!โ€ exclaimed Dr. Rittenburg. โ€œBut of course you will publish a reproduction? Every student in the world is entitled to access to such a discovery.โ€ John Cumberland smiled happily. No triumph that his business had offered or could offer compared with the thrill of such a moment as this. โ€œIn due course,โ€ he said, โ€œbut not yet.โ€ Whereupon a debate arose concerning certain papyri, with the mere names of which Barry was unacquainted, and their points of resemblance to this one. Much excellent old brandy aided the debate. The two experts disagreed fiercely; but at a late hour, Dr. Rittenburg and Horace Pain having departed quite reconciled: โ€œNow,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œwith Danbazzarโ€™s consent, I shall discuss this matter with you, Blackwell. Your province is rather physiological than archรฆological. We have had expert opinion on the papyrus itself, and now we should like to have your opinion upon the feasibility of the claims made in it.โ€ The silent Arab replenished the guestsโ€™ glasses, except the Professorโ€™s; for Blackwell, who was already lost in thought, waved him aside. The distinguished scientist was a tall man, though not so tall as Danbazzar, and built bonily. He was clean shaven, with a long strong nose; and from his high brow, hair which was beginning to go gray was carelessly brushed back. His clothes would have fitted someone else better than they fitted the Professor, and he wore a low double collar with his dinner jacket, allowing free play to an enormously developed Adamโ€™s apple. His eyes, behind the thick pebbles of his glasses, resembled two interrogation marks. โ€œI never jump to conclusions,โ€ he began, thoughtfully selecting a cigar from a box which Danbazzar slid across the table in his direction. The box was an Ancient Egyptian curiosity, but Professor Blackwell had not even noticed the fact: his thoughts were elsewhere. โ€œLife,โ€ he went on, โ€œconsidered in the abstract, is the one thing of which Science knows nothing. Adolf Weisman maintained that duration of life is dependent upon adaptation to external conditions. We may take the case of what is sometimes termed โ€˜mummy wheat.โ€™ Personally, I cannot vouch for these stories.โ€ โ€œI can,โ€ Danbazzar said gravely. โ€œI myself have seen grains of wheat taken from a tomb of the fourteenth dynasty cultivated.โ€ โ€œDid they yield any crop?โ€ the Professor inquired. โ€œNo,โ€ Danbazzar acknowledged. โ€œThey shot up a very tender green to a height of six inches and then died.โ€ โ€œQuite, quite,โ€ murmured the Professor, โ€œbut the life principle was present, you see–dormant, but present. There is the case of a toad imprisoned in a rock cavity for several generations, vouched for by persons of repute, and I once examined, in India, a fakir who claimed the power to unhitch his spirit from his body. Under these conditions he presented every appearance of death and existed without visible wasting for a long period unsustained by food or drink of any kind. The question really is whether the tissues could be preserved over so long a period as thisโ€–nodding toward the papyrus–โ€œindicated.โ€ โ€œIf for three hundred years, why not for three thousand?โ€ John Cumberland demanded. โ€œQuite, quite,โ€ the professor murmured; โ€œbut unfortunately this fact rests upon what I may term โ€˜hearsay.โ€™ The people who wrote it have been dead for some little time, you must remember!โ€ There was a short silence, broken by Danbazzar. โ€œHave you ever seen the mummy of Seti the First?โ€ he demanded in his deep, impressive tone. โ€œYes.โ€ Professor Blackwell looked up slowly. โ€œCuriously enough, I was thinking about him. He, of course, dates from somewhere about the same period as Princess Zalithea, and the preservation in this case is remarkable. But the system of mummifying employed on Seti could not be employed on a living person. It is very interesting, though–very interesting. A German physiologist whom I met in Berlin recently–I forget his name, but he was a knowledgeable man–was anxious to attempt some experiment of the kind, in a small way, upon a hypnotized subject. The difficulty, of course, was to find the subject.โ€ โ€œNaturally!โ€ said Barry, laughing. The Professor glanced aside at him over his spectacles. And then: โ€œI pointed out to my German acquaintance,โ€ he went on, โ€œthat normal processes of decay would proceed under these conditions quite inevitably. And if there is anything in the extraordinary claims made in this papyrus, I can only assume that some formula must have been invented to check these processes. Of course, it is frightfully empirical. One dare not raise such a thing seriously before modern science. It would spell ruin.โ€ โ€œNevertheless,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œyou are right–there was such a formula.โ€ โ€œAh!โ€ exclaimed John Cumberland, โ€œif only we could recover it.โ€ โ€œI have recovered it,โ€ Danbazzar replied calmly. โ€œWhat!โ€ โ€œI acquired it at the same time that I acquired this other papyrus. It is locked in that safe over there.โ€ โ€œThat settles it,โ€ said Cumberland, standing up. โ€œMy other plans are made. What do you estimate it would cost, Danbazzar, to finance the expedition?โ€ โ€œTwo hundred thousand dollars,โ€ was the prompt reply. โ€œBe ready in a fortnight,โ€ said Cumberland. โ€œI must start then or postpone the journey till next season.โ€ Chapter 9. Egypt Bound. โ€œSome people are so indecently lucky,โ€ Jim Sakers protested. โ€œIt has been my ambition from childhood to visit the interior of the Sphinx.โ€ โ€œYou poor nut!โ€ said Barry. โ€œThe Sphinx is solid. You mean the interior of the Pyramid!โ€ โ€œNot so hasty,โ€ Jim rebuked him, โ€œnot so hasty, my friend. My ambitions are not the ambitions of an ordinary man. Any fool can visit the interior of the Pyramid if heโ€™s lucky enough to get to Egypt. Nothing so commonplace as that appeals to me. I said, and I repeat, that it has always been my ambition to visit the interior of the Sphinx. I hope I make myself clear.โ€ โ€œYou expose fresh views of your ghastly ignorance at every turn,โ€ Barry said. โ€œIf you can think clearly for two minutes, concentrate on what Iโ€™m going to say. Everybody seems to think that I need a vacation, and Dad has decided to pay a visit to Egypt and to spend the beginning of winter there. โ€œLucky, lucky man,โ€ Jim murmured. โ€œHe is keen for me to go with him,โ€ Barry went on; โ€œand as I have never been out of America yet, the idea rather appeals—-โ€ โ€œRather appeals!โ€ Jim echoed. โ€œOh! the blasรฉ youth of this generation! I should cheer for an hour without stopping if my honoured parent could be induced to get out of touch with Wall Street for a week end!โ€ โ€œIn brief,โ€ Barry pursued patiently, โ€œthe idea that I am trying to drive into your thick skull is this: I am going to Egypt, and I am going next week.โ€ โ€œThis is dreadful,โ€ Jim declared. โ€œThink of the broken hearts in New York. Besides, what about the Princess?โ€ โ€œIt is about the Princess,โ€ Barry returned, โ€œthat I want to speak to you. Several people, yourself included, have tried to convince me that Iโ€™m suffering from a delusion where this girl is concerned. But I am just as certain as ever that I have seen her, definitely twice, possibly three times. What I want to ask you is this: Once in a while, when you are in that neighbourhood, see if you can find anything out.โ€ โ€œYou mean,โ€ Jim suggested, โ€œdrop in on Mr. Brown and say that I have called about the electric light, or the installment due on the Ford, or something of that kind?โ€ โ€œSomething of that kind,โ€ Barry agreed. โ€œDo it your own way–but just keep a sharp lookout. And if you should pick up any information, send me a cable. I canโ€™t give you the route. When we get to some place up the Nile where we are going to camp, I shall have to let you know.โ€ โ€œConsider it done,โ€ said Jim. โ€œAnd now, I have a request to make. Bring me back a large bottle filled with the sand of the unchanging desert. By sprinkling this in my bathroom and walking about in bare feet, I shall be able to imagine that I am a son of the mysterious East. Ho, there! Fatima, my dark eyed ship of the desert!โ€ โ€œThe expression โ€˜ship of the desert,โ€™โ€ Barry interrupted, โ€œusually refers to a camel!โ€ โ€œI am talking about a camel,โ€ Jim assured him. โ€œThe affection of the Arab for his camel is an historical fact.โ€ โ€œYou are thinking about his horse!โ€ โ€œI am not thinking about his horse!โ€ Jim cried. โ€œThe Arab I am talking about has no horse, he has a camel.โ€ And now: โ€œWhatโ€™s the row?โ€ demanded a deep voice. Aunt Micky intruded, carrying a large hatbox. โ€œHello! Micky!โ€ Barry exclaimed. โ€œBeen shopping again?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ was the reply; โ€œit has just arrived. The best that Dobbs could do for me.โ€ Opening the box, she produced a sun helmet of dazzling white, decorated with a puggaree band in silver, violet, and maroon. โ€œGreat shakes!โ€ Jim exclaimed. โ€œIs this for Barry?โ€ โ€œIt is,โ€ Aunt Micky returned firmly. โ€œIt is most important that he should not expose his skull to the rays of the sun. John always wears a helmet in the East.โ€ โ€œI know he does,โ€ Barry admitted ruefully, contemplating this โ€œcreation,โ€ โ€œbut the one he wears is a decent sort of putty shade–and without ribbons. However! Is it the right size?โ€ He tried it on. โ€œReally smart people,โ€ Jim commented, โ€œwear a feather–a small, neat feather–stuck in the band just above the left ear. I am told that everyone will be wearing them this season. Didnโ€™t they tip you this at Dobbsโ€™, Micky?โ€ โ€œThey tipped me a lot of things,โ€ Micky returned, lighting a cigarette, โ€œand there are lots of things I could tip you!โ€ โ€œI know it,โ€ he said; โ€œmy ignorance is appalling. But on one point Park Avenue is agreed. I do know how to dress. Further, I donโ€™t merely put on my clothes–I wear them! Allow me, Barry.โ€ He raised his hands and settled the helmet at an angle over Barryโ€™s right ear, then took a step back to contemplate the result. โ€œBetter,โ€ he muttered, โ€œbetter. That is the British Army rake. Of course–โ€ again grasping the helmet and tilting it forward–โ€œthere is the Rajah rake, very popular in India, and also—-โ€ He was about to take further liberties when Barry gave him a playful but powerful punch in the chest. โ€œAnd also there is the complete limit,โ€ he said, โ€œand you reach it every time, Jim.โ€ Taken all around, however, the period of preparation was an exciting one for Barry. His father was an experienced traveller and, under his guidance, Barry acquired all sorts of equipment for the journey. On the advice of Danbazzar, most of the camp gear, the firearms, and the impedimenta of the excavator, they were picking up in London. Danbazzar had prepared a formidable list of these, and Barry discovered a great fascination in merely reading it. The papyrus had disappeared into Danbazzarโ€™s great safe, and Barry often wondered if his imagination had played him tricks in regard to the portrait of Princess Zalithea. He had abandoned hope of ever seeing this girl of dreams again; but Fate had one more curious experience in store for him, and it came about in this way: Professor Blackwell was leaving for Europe a week ahead of them, and later joining the party in Egypt. Bound to strictest secrecy regarding the nature of the expedition, his scientific curiosity had been greatly aroused, and he had consented to be present at the opening of the tomb when that time came. The steamer sailed at midnight, and Professor Blackwell had dined at the Cumberland home prior to joining her. Barry and his father went on board with him, inspected his stateroom, ascertained that his baggage had arrived safely, and then: โ€œThere is no point in waiting,โ€ said the Professor. โ€œWe donโ€™t sail for another twenty minutes or so, but it is my custom on these night sailings to turn in. I leave unpacking until the morning. I hate all this fuss and bustle!โ€ โ€œAs you like, Blackwell,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œSee you in Cairo–or, if you have gone up the river, in Luxor. Hope you have a nice crossing.โ€ Barry and his father came down the gangway, turned to wave to the tall, gaunt Professor at the top, and then made their way along the pier toward the staircase. They reached the street level at practically the same moment that the elevator started up. Through the iron grille of the car a girl was looking out, apparently directly at Barry. He stopped dead, stared at the ascending elevator, and then, with no explanation to his father, turned and fled back up the stairs like a man demented! His behaviour was so extraordinary that a Customs official intercepted him at the top. โ€œKindly stand aside!โ€ Barry said breathlessly. โ€œI have seen someone I want to speak to–must speak to!โ€ โ€œGo easy, go easy!โ€ The man persistently intruded his burly form. โ€œWait a minute! Who are you running away from?โ€ โ€œIโ€™m not running away from anybody!โ€ cried Barry angrily. โ€œLet me pass! I want to go on board.โ€ โ€œGo easy!โ€ the man repeated. โ€œYou canโ€™t go on board. The last visitors are just coming ashore. In three minutes the gangway will be cleared—-โ€ And then John Cumberland, even more breathless than Barry, arrived on the scene. โ€œWhatโ€™s the matter?โ€ he asked; and, to the man: โ€œItโ€™s all right,โ€ he explained. โ€œMy name is John Cumberland. My son has seen someone he thinks he knows.โ€ โ€œYou can guess who it is!โ€ the latter returned. โ€œAnd Iโ€™ve lost her again!โ€ Slipping past the mystified Customs officer, he raced out along the pier. Beyond exciting amusement and astonishment among the onlookers, his reward was nil. Of course! He was too late! And he was sure, absolutely sure, that this time he had not been mistaken! Could it be that she had gone on board the liner?–that she was leaving America–still unknown, elusive to the end! He was prevented from reaching the gangplank. The order โ€œClear away!โ€ was given as he ran up. Realizing the hopelessness of the thing, he turned and went back to where his father waited. His manner was constrained. As they drove home, John Cumberland was very sympathetic, but secretly was glad to think that the journey to Egypt would prove a powerful distraction, which he considered his son badly needed. He was growing more and more anxious about this odd obsession of Barryโ€™s. We are no other than a moving row Of magic shadow shapes which come and go, Round with the sun illumined lantern held In midnight by the Master of the Show. The Master of the Show had many more queer tricks and illusions in store. But neither Barry nor John Cumberland, being poor mortals, could peep behind the scenes. The ensuing week passed like a feverish dream, so magically does time dissolve on such occasions–and the night of their departure for Egypt came. A tremendous crowd of friends turned up to see them off, Aunt Micky more iron jawed than usual, and full of dark theories respecting missing baggage which was really safely on board, of course. โ€œClean your teeth in Vichy water,โ€ was her last injunction to Barry. โ€œOnce you are out of England, all water is poison.โ€ Then came the final shouted farewells, Danbazzar, Barry, and John Cumberland standing at the rail as the liner crept out of her dock. Much cheering and waving of hats. Great excitement, to be followed by depression. And over it all came a clarion cry from Jim Sakers, standing bareheaded far below, a megaphone upraised. โ€œDonโ€™t forget, Barry!โ€ he bellowed–โ€œa bottle of the Unchanging Desert! I am an Arab brave and free!โ€ Chapter 10. Cairo. From the balcony of Shepheardโ€™s Hotel, Barry fascinatedly watched the life in the street below. This was Cairo!–real yet less than his imaginings concerning it. Vendors of fly whisks, of scarabs incredibly old, of necklaces from the tombs of queens, of red slippers, of all sorts of Birmingham ware, clamoured in a group beneath him. They poked their offerings through the railings at his feet. The instinct of these people was wonderful. His father was never solicited in this way. One glance the sidewalk merchants would give him, smile sadly and pass on. While of Danbazzar they seemed to be positively afraid. The passers by absorbed his attention. He had learned to pick out the residents from the tourists, to recognize the curious air of detachment, that quiet fatalism which is the seal of Africa. He had also grown used to the tarbรปsh worn by the British officers. At first he had mistaken them all for Turks. But he was not yet entirely reconciled to the presence of laden camels and smart automobiles in the same street. In some of the cars he had glimpses of veiled women, whose long dark eyes provoked him. Whenever such a harem car went by he craned forward eagerly, vaguely expecting to meet the glance of eyes that he knew. During the journey, he had torn himself free in a measure from this strange infatuation, but Egypt had revived his dreams. He had dressed early this evening, and now, sipping a cocktail, sat waiting for his father to join him. It was too hot yet for the big tourist invasion, but the advance guard was already in possession. Guide books were in evidence at several tables in his immediate neighbourhood. To whatever government, Turkish, French, British, or Egyptian, the people may from time to time acknowledge obedience, everybody knows that Egypt really belongs to Thomas Cook Son. To night, Danbazzar was expected back from Luxor, where he had been to select a base of operations and to check the information furnished by his agent. This agent, Hassan es Sugra by name, had met him there four days earlier and was returning with him to Cairo. John Cumberlandโ€™s excitement had been intense all day, and Barryโ€™s little less. Never, until now, had Barry fully understood the hold that Egypt and the things of Egypt had over his father. It was a complete, an absorbing passion. The John Cumberland of New York was barely recognizable in this keen, alert, bright eyed man to whom the African air was an elixir of youth, and who now crossed the terrace and joined him. โ€œWell, Barry,โ€ said he, โ€œhas the spell of the Nile got hold of you yet?โ€ โ€œIt has, Dad,โ€ Barry admitted, looking at the healthily tanned face of the speaker; โ€œIโ€™m simply dying to start. I went again to day to look at the mummy of Seti; and even now I find it hard to believe that this man ruled over Egypt, a civilized country, at a time when Europe was peopled by savages, and when the American Continent was probably a mix up of mountains, forests, swamps, and rivers. That man was no savage, he was a ruler of great power and intellect.โ€ โ€œCertainly he was,โ€ John Cumberland agreed, nodding to an acquaintance coming up the steps. โ€œWe are very proud of our new wisdom, Barry. I wonder how much of it is in advance of the old?โ€ โ€œI hadnโ€™t been altogether able to believe in your hopes of success,โ€ Barry went on, โ€œbut the figure of Seti is beginning to make me share them. There he lies in the flesh for everyone to see. I looked at him yesterday for nearly half an hour, and I realized that he had known, probably had many times spoken to, the Princess Zalithea! Dad, Iโ€™m just crazy to be on the job! Isnโ€™t Danbazzar late?โ€ John Cumberland glanced at his watch; then: โ€œNo,โ€ he replied. โ€œThe train got in about ten minutes ago. He should be here at any moment now.โ€ And even as he spoke an arabiyeh pulled up at the steps and Danbazzar got out. He wore a white drill suit, the coat cut tunic fashion and buttoning close up to the neck. His light gray felt hat with its very wide brim awakened in this Eastern scene memories of the West. His pale skin had assumed a deep, even tan, and, with his aquiline features, he looked more truly of the Orient than any of the Cairenes about him. His gaze sought and found John Cumberland on the terrace, and he raised his right hand in a slow, graceful gesture. A second traveller descended from the carriage and followed Danbazzar up the steps. This was an รฆsthetic looking Egyptian, black robed and white turbaned, slender, with small delicate features and the gentle eyes of a gazelle. He carried an ebony cane and possessed a curious dignity, utterly unlike that of Danbazzar, yet in its way equally impressive. John Cumberland sprang up eagerly and extended his hand. โ€œIs everything all right?โ€ he demanded. โ€œEverything is fine,โ€ Danbazzar replied, and, turning, greeted Barry. โ€œI want you to meet our Chief of Staff, Hassan es Sugra. What I donโ€™t know about the Valley of the Kings, Hassan can tell us.โ€ Hassan saluted profoundly, and Danbazzar now gave him permission to be seated. Discreetly, he took a chair a little removed from the others and waited to be addressed. John Cumberland glanced around to make sure that he could not be overheard; and: โ€œHow many men have you got?โ€ he asked. โ€œHassan has engaged fifteen,โ€ was the reply. โ€œMost of them are already in Luxor.โ€ โ€œNo suspicion has been aroused?โ€ โ€œAbsolutely none,โ€ Danbazzar assured him. โ€œSo far, there hasnโ€™t been a single hitch.โ€ โ€œI take it these men are living in Luxor at present?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œYes. In the native quarter, where most of them have friends; for they are all excavators and used to the work.โ€ โ€œWe will have cocktails in my room,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œOne never knows who may overhear us.โ€ The party went upstairs to Cumberlandโ€™s suite, which overlooked the romantic gardens of the hotel, and cocktails were ordered. Hassan es Sugra was a devout Moslem, one who had made the pilgrimage to Mecca. He drank coffee, which, when the waiter presently appeared, he took with him out on to the balcony, bowing deeply as he retired. โ€œThatโ€™s a mysterious fellow!โ€ said Barry. Danbazzar fixed the speaker with his piercing regard, and: โ€œYouโ€™re right,โ€ he agreed. โ€œHeโ€™s quite a lot of mystery. But he holds some kind of position in the Moslem world that gives him complete control of the natives. Heโ€™s the best man at the job in Egypt. He can get things done that you or I couldnโ€™t manage if we spent a million dollars. Yes, sir, Hassan es Sugra is worth his weight in gold, and he knows the game from A to Z.โ€ โ€œGood!โ€ commented John Cumberland. โ€œI know the type and I believe you. Wasnโ€™t he with Flinders Petrie at one time?โ€ โ€œThe tomb?โ€ asked Barry Cumberland eagerly. โ€œIt has not been disturbed?โ€ Danbazzar stood up, and slowly crossing to a side table, dropped ash into a tray. He turned and: โ€œItโ€™s absolutely untouched,โ€ he replied. โ€œThe entrance where I reclosed it is almost hidden by sand. You can rest easy.โ€ He paused impressively. โ€œNo one has disturbed her.โ€ โ€œGad!โ€ Barry brought his hand down upon his knee. โ€œIt sounds almost too good to be true! But how did Hassan identify the tomb in the first place? How was he sure? How can you be sure?โ€ โ€œYou can take it I made sure before I started,โ€ Danbazzar answered calmly, โ€œbut, anyway, Hassan never makes a mistake. You remember the cartouche in the papyrus? It was not that of any Pharaoh or any member of any known royal family. It was clearly meant to represent Princess Zalithea.โ€ He stooped over the cane table at which John Cumberland and his son were seated. With a pencil he roughly outlined upon a newspaper which lay there a design of four figures. โ€œWeโ€™re agreed,โ€ he said, glancing up, โ€œthat its meaning is: โ€˜She Who Sleeps but Who Will Awake.โ€™ Both Mr. Pain and Dr. Rittenburg have checked this.โ€ โ€œWell!โ€ said Barry eagerly. โ€œWell!โ€ Danbazzar replaced the pencil in a breast pocket of his tunic. โ€œThis same inscription is cut in the rock before the entrance of the tomb!โ€ โ€œI have sometimes wondered,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œwhy it has been overlooked so long.โ€ Danbazzar stared at him for a moment, and then: โ€œHave you stopped to think,โ€ he asked, โ€œhow many tombs there are in that valley? Why should those few people with powers to excavate open an obscure one? Whatโ€™s more, the tomb is in an unfrequented spot, almost due north of the Tombs of the Queens and on the edge of the western valley, more than half a mile from the Tombs of the Kings. The nearest place ordinary tourists ever visit is the tomb of Queen Nefertari and that of Seth Ra, the wife of Seti the First. This was about where I figured to find it. Seven miles farther west, and about a mile and a half north of the caravan road from Farshรปt to Kรปrna, Hassan has put up our men. Thereโ€™s a small Hawwara village there, and the Sheik is a good friend of mine.โ€ โ€œWhen do we start?โ€ cried Barry eagerly. โ€œI can see no reason,โ€ Danbazzar replied, โ€œwhy we shouldnโ€™t leave for Luxor in the morning. We shall be wise to take every advantage of the slack season before the tourist rush begins.โ€ Barry watched the speaker fascinatedly. During his short stay in Cairo, he had been out to visit the Sphinx, that long cherished ambition of Jimโ€™s; he had penetrated to the interior of the Great Pyramid, and had wandered through the fascinating bazaar streets of the Mรปski. He had known the whole indescribable atmosphere that creeps over the most modern and garish hotel in Cairo when night drops its cloak upon Egypt. Now, it seemed to him, watching Danbazzar, that of all the mysteries that the Nile has known, this man was the greatest. โ€œAnd now, I suggest that we consult with Hassan,โ€ Danbazzar went on. He stood up, clapping his hands sharply. From the shadowy mystery of the balcony, Hassan es Sugra entered, a slim, impressive black figure. He bowed low upon the threshold. Chapter 11. Luxor. The Nile was high. Much of the Memnonia was impassable. The Colossi sat lonely in the midst of a great lake, when Barry came to Luxor. In this way he saw the City of the Sun under advantageous conditions. The Winter Palace Hotel, whose impudent modernity aspires to dwarf the majesty of the great temple, was in a comatose state. Its palatial suites which later in the season would echo Wall Street quotations, its public rooms where, anon, much talk would be heard about the situation in the English coalfields and the cheery optimism of Mr. Baldwin, these were empty. Empty was the dragomansโ€™ bench before the entrance. No guttural German voices were raised in argument against the soft music of Arabic impostors, relative to the cost of donkeys from Kรปrna to Dรชr el Bรขhari. The tourist steamers were missing; yet Barry did not miss them. Sighing wearily at the end of her summer sleep, the City of the Sun looked wistfully down the Nile from which at any time now invasion might be expected. Barry had conceived something very like friendship for Hassan es Sugra. The man fascinated him. Delicate in form and features, soft spoken and mild eyed, slow of movement and speech, invariably unruffled, Barry had detected beneath the velvet surface an indomitable will, and something else. On the evening of their arrival, leaving Danbazzar and John Cumberland at the hotel poring over rough plans, Barry had set out with Hassan to view the celebrated spectacle of Karnak by moonlight. The evening was oppressively hot. The sky looked like a dome of lapis lazuli. The moon was such a moon as gave birth to Isis; fronds of palms seemed to be carved out of ebony; and the whiteness of the buildings was dazzling. Plaintive notes of a reed pipe crept up from the river, with more distant throbbing of a darabukkeh. A great zest of life, an eagerness to inhale, as it were, the unfamiliar perfume of this strange land, possessed Barry. He hurried as though bound for his fatherโ€™s New York office. But: โ€œSir,โ€ said Hassan, in his soft, caressing voice, โ€œthere is no need for haste, and the evening is hot.โ€ Barry pulled up and glanced aside at his companion. The gaze of the gazelle like eyes met his own. Hassan smiled. โ€œAlways,โ€ the speaker went on hesitantly yet with perfect expression, โ€œalways the gentlemen who come from America and from Europe are in so great a hurry; particularly the gentlemen from America. Yet there is so much time, and life in Egypt is very beautiful for those who will rest and enjoy it.โ€ Barry laughed. โ€œNo wonder you always look so cool,โ€ he commented. โ€œNow I come to think of it, I have never seen you hurry. โ€ Hassan extended his slender brown hands, his ebony stick held lightly between the first and second fingers of the left. โ€œWhat is there to hurry for?โ€ he asked softly. โ€œWe are all going the same way. Why should we try to pass one another? Everything that life has to give us is ours to night. Let us enjoy it, for to night will never come again.โ€ Barry stared curiously at this survival of the Arabian philosophers, but checked his eager steps and walked on sedately beside the dignified Egyptian. Spots of interest were pointed out by Hassan, and, as they moved through the streets, it became apparent to Barry that his companion possessed many acquaintances in Upper Egypt by whom he was held in high esteem. A most notable demonstration of this came when they passed a cafรฉ in the native town. A number of men sat smoking outside. Five of them, on sight of the approaching figure, sprang up and performed a graceful Arab salute with the right hand. All were fine types, tall muscular fellows, and different from the townsmen surrounding them. Hassan es Sugra gravely returned their salutation, but they remained standing until the cafรฉ was passed. โ€œWho were those men, Hassan?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œThey are some of our excavators, sir,โ€ Hassan replied. โ€œMost of them are already at the camp: these are late arrivals who go to morrow.โ€ Barry glanced curiously at the delicate, almost effeminate face of the speaker, and he wondered, as he had wondered many times before, how Hassan es Sugra had inspired, and how he retained, the profound respect of these men. And so, pursuing their leisurely way, they presently found themselves on the ancient road to Karnak, formerly bordered by Sphinxes throughout the mile of its length. The silence now was broken only by the distant note of a pipe, the faint throbbing of a drum. Barry grew silent, too, awed by the sleeping past upon which he intruded. At that point where the road turned left into the Avenue of the Rams he sighted the great shadowy ruins and hastened his steps. โ€œIt is fortunate, sir,โ€ Hassan said, laying one slender hand upon Barryโ€™s arm to check this impetuous increase of pace, โ€œthat we have been able to begin while the Nile was in flood.โ€ โ€œWhy is that?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œBecause,โ€ Hassan replied, โ€œthe tomb, which is on high land, can only be approached from above at this season and is cut off from those routes along which people generally come. We are less likely to be disturbed.โ€ At the entrance to the Temple, the Ghafรฎr appeared, mysterious, out of a bank of shadow. Barry, a law abiding citizen, had been given to understand that he must show his ticket here, but Hassan es Sugra waved him aside, saluted the guardian, was saluted deeply in return, and they entered the great, silent building. Again Barry found himself glancing curiously at the face of his companion, delicately beautiful in the moonlight. He was learning a lesson that anyone susceptible to truth learns in Egypt. He was learning to look with less satisfaction upon the hurriedly grasped successes of modern life, and to experience an unpleasant sense of inferiority in the company of this dignified, placid, yet majestic Arab. Those who are sent to govern in these lands must be of a type immune from such impressions. Barry had too much poetry in his nature to be blind to some strange spiritual calm possessed by Hassan es Sugra whom Aunt Micky would have briefly classified as a heathen, the secret of which has been lost during generations of feverish endeavour. He found himself amid a forest of vast columns; statues looked down upon him scornfully; and all about him upon painted walls were those Pharaohs and gods whom the imagination of Pierre Loti has depicted as eternally signalling to one another. Bats haunted high, shadowy places, and the note of some night bird sounded eerily. Hassan es Sugra walked through the mysterious darkness as confidently as Barry would have walked along Fifth Avenue, until they came to the Great Hall, most awe inspiring of all the Egyptian monuments. He seemed to know every inch of the place. The hieroglyphics held no mystery for him. Raising his stick he pointed to an inscription, translating slowly: โ€œI did the best I could for the Temple of Amen, as architect of my Lord. I placed obelisks, their height reached to the world of heaven. A propylon is before the same in sight of the city of Thebes; and ponds and gardens of flourishing trees.โ€ฆโ€ โ€œWho made this inscription, Hassan?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œHe was the First Prophet of Amen,โ€ was the reply, โ€œin the reign of Rameses the Second, who was the son of Seti the First.โ€ Barry did not reply. A new idea had possessed him; a new magic had invested the building. Here, in this vast, wonderful temple place, she must have walked–the Princess Zalithea!–the beautiful, mysterious girl of the past who was so like that other, who lived, who surely lived, in the present! His blood tingled, impatience claimed him, and, suddenly turning to Hassan: โ€œWhen do we begin to excavate?โ€ he asked abruptly. โ€œI hope, sir, the day after to morrow.โ€ โ€œGood!โ€ said Barry. The magic of Egypt had got into his veins. He knew that whatever else life might hold for him, wherever Fate should guide his steps, always until the end he would hear it calling him–calling him back to the Nile. Later that night in the almost deserted lounge of the hotel he got into conversation with a very bored young man whose job was connected with the Irrigation Department. In a less virulent case this young man could not have failed to prove a perfect antidote. โ€œDead alive hole, this,โ€ he declared, โ€œout of the season. Did you stay long in London?โ€ โ€œA week,โ€ Barry replied. โ€œLucky man!โ€ sighed the other. โ€œI would cheerfully sell all Egypt, if it belonged to me, for a week in London. See any new shows?โ€ โ€œOne or two.โ€ โ€œGad! Iโ€™d see one every eveninโ€™! And after the show Iโ€™d go on to the Kit Cat, first night; the Embassy, next night; Ciroโ€™s, third night. And so forth.โ€ โ€œReally?โ€ said Barry. โ€œThatโ€™s odd! The life in London or New York or Paris seems to be much the same. Iโ€™ve been fed up with the usual round for years!โ€ โ€œIโ€™ve never had a chance to get fed up,โ€ the other declared plaintively. โ€œI went straight from Oxford to the war, straight from the war to hospital, and straight from hospital to this blasted hole.โ€ โ€œDonโ€™t you get a vacation sometimes?โ€ โ€œSometimes is right,โ€ said the other. Barry laughed at his acquaintanceโ€™s pessimism and ordered another drink. As the waiter brought it: โ€œYou are not here for fun, are you?โ€ the irrigation man inquired wearily; โ€œbecause thereโ€™s nothing funny about Luxor.โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ said Barry guardedly. โ€œMy father and I are here on a job of work.โ€ โ€œYou are not goinโ€™ to try to Americanize Egypt, are you?โ€ the other suggested. โ€œNot exactly,โ€ Barry replied. โ€œDad has a scheme for exploiting the old caravan road to the Dakhla Oasis.โ€ โ€œWhat for?โ€ drawled his acquaintance. โ€œNobody wants to go there!โ€ โ€œThey might,โ€ Barry returned, โ€œif the journey were easier.โ€ โ€œGoinโ€™ to build a hotel there?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t quite know, but we are starting out to morrow to prospect. โ€œGood luck!โ€ murmured the irrigation gentleman, raising his glass. โ€œIf Iโ€™m still alive when you come back you might bring me a few dates. They are the best dates in Egypt. I donโ€™t think they grow anything else.โ€ Their chat was interrupted at this point by the sudden appearance of Professor Blackwell, expected that evening from Assouan and evidently newly arrived. โ€œAh! Professor!โ€ cried Barry, jumping up. โ€œGlad to see you! Does Dad know you are here?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ the Professor replied, dropping into an armchair. โ€œI have only this very moment come in.โ€ Barry introduced the Professor to the irrigation expert, who presently, however, having offered to buy more drinks, withdrew to what he termed his โ€œfly trap,โ€ nodding gloomily to Barry as he went. โ€œDonโ€™t forget the dates,โ€ were his parting words. Going back to their rooms, Barry ushered in Professor Blackwell. John Cumberland, who was seated at a table studying some maps, stood up gladly to greet him. Danbazzar, his broad back to the room, was staring out of the open window across the Nile to where, sharp in the moonlight, the Libyan Hills were outlined against the sky. He turned, fixing his penetrating regard upon the new arrivals; and: โ€œHassan tells me,โ€ Barry began eagerly, โ€œthat we start operations on Thursday. Is that correct?โ€ โ€œItโ€™s surely correct,โ€ came Danbazzarโ€™s deep voice. โ€œI donโ€™t know whoโ€™s been giving public recitations, but it looks like some of our plans have leaked out. Yes, sir, we start on Thursday.โ€ Chapter 12. The Camp In The Desert. Barry now entered upon a period of existence widely different from any he had known. Danbazzarโ€™s camp was in the neck of a wรขdi on the north of the caravan route from Thebes to Farshรปt. Further north, and visible from the tents, on the summit of a mountain stood an ancient watchtower, used in the days of the Pharaohs by the tomb guard. All about were remains of stone huts which had probably been the quarters of these guards. On the right, above terraced, desolate hills covered with dรฉbris of abandoned excavations, rose the stately mass of El Kurn, the Horn. Here in this weird quarry to which no one ever penetrated, they had their base of operations. The native excavators, in charge of a headman who proved to be one of the group that had been seated outside the Luxor cafรฉ, had their quarters several miles distant, in a sort of tumbledown village principally inhabited by dogs. Native life in the towns had offered novel features, but the conditions prevailing in this desert village surpassed anything Barry could have imagined. An entire absence of sanitary arrangements was the outstanding novelty; next to which he never got used to the spectacle of a considerable family, a number of dogs, chickens, and sometimes a donkey, residing happily together in one apartment which could have been covered by a full sized dining table. They reached camp at dusk, although they had crossed the river in the morning, having travelled by a circuitous route over high ridges and through gloomy passes, to find that a native cook had prepared dinner and that Hassan es Sugra, who had gone ahead, was waiting to receive them. Before attacking the meal, Barry, tired though he was, climbed the side of the wรขdi and stood on the edge of a small plateau, looking out to the rosy haze that marked the course of old, distant Nile. The unforgettable dusk of Egypt was falling. Rocks showed like black smudges on a gray canvas, and the sky was passing through an amazing transformation of delicate blue to shell pink, which, by some natural magic, combined to form the violet afterglow which is not the least of this countryโ€™s beauties. From below came a faint clattering of cooking utensils, and a dog was howling somewhere, probably in the village where the workmen were quartered. The great adventure had begun. To night he was to see for the first time the tomb of Princess Zalithea! He uttered a deep sigh, which was a sigh of contentment, and climbed down the steep descent again to the camp. They dined inside one of the tents, Danbazzar deeming it unwise to court attention from any chance travellers upon the ridge above. Barry stooped and entered the little canvas dwelling which was to be his home for some time to come. It presented a spectacle, on that first night, which was always to remain with him as an odd memory. Plates of steaming tomato soup Heinz tinned variety were set upon the small square table, which even boasted a white cloth. The cook, a big, bearded fellow from the Fayyum, his magnificent teeth revealed in a constant grin, was just placing loaves and a pitcher of water upon the hospitable board. Danbazzar, wearing a white shirt open at the neck, riding breeches, and gaiters, seemed utterly appropriate in that setting. His pale skin had assumed an even, dark tan, his magnificent composure was an unspoken retort to Barryโ€™s sudden idea that this was some solemn farce–a dream from which he would presently awaken. John Cumberland, also coatless, sat on the right of the table. He seized a loaf and began to carve it vigorously, looking up as Barry entered. It was hard to recognize the John Cumberland of New York in this sun baked adventurer, and the only member of the party who seemed out of place was Professor Blackwell, who faced his friend across the table. He wore a black alpaca jacket and had omitted to remove his sun helmet. He was gazing in gloomy disapproval at a large beetle of the Scarabรฆus family which appeared to be attracted by the odour of his soup. โ€œWell, Barry!โ€ John Cumberland greeted him. โ€œWhat do you think of our new quarters?โ€ โ€œFirst rate!โ€ was the laughing reply, as Barry took the vacant chair. โ€œIf we go on in this style we shanโ€™t starve.โ€ Professor Blackwell bent toward him; and: โ€œThereโ€™s plenty of liquor,โ€ he whispered in his ear, โ€œbut all these fellows are strict Moslems, and we should lose their respect, so Danbazzar informs me, if they knew we drank anything stronger than water.โ€ The soup dispatched: โ€œStick your head out and tell Mahmoud we are ready for the chicken,โ€ said John Cumberland. Barry nodded, stood up, and stepped outside the tent. The camp kitchen had been established in a sort of cave in the side of the wรขdi, suspiciously like the entrance to a partially opened tomb. The glistening, smiling face of Mahmoud, the cook, showed in the reflected light. He smiled as he cooked and sang soft Arab love songs. Before the entrance to this little tunnel, leaning upon his ebony cane, Barry saw Hassan es Sugra, reflectively studying the efforts of the chef. At the same moment he detected a faint, sweet sound. From a great distance it seemed to come–above and beyond–a rhythmic, silvery jingling. He had just opened his mouth to shout โ€œMahmoud,โ€ when Hassan turned toward him and raised his hand in warning. Night now had fallen, swiftly, blackly. Ebon shadows lay in the wรขdi; above, on crags and terraces of the mountains, were gleaming high lights where the moon shone. The musical sound went on uninterruptedly. Danbazzarโ€™s precautions had been justified. Spiritually transported to the realms of the Arabian Nights, Barry stood, silent, listening. Camel bells! It was the sound of camel bells! High above on the mountain ridge a caravan was passing on its way from Thebes to Farshรปt.โ€ฆ After dinner, pipes and cigars being lighted, they held a council of war, seated around the table in the tent. At this council Hassan es Sugra attended. โ€œAlthough no precautions have been neglected,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œthere appears to be suspicion about the object of our journey in certain quarters. I had an interview yesterday with the secretary of Mudรฎr of Luxor. We have known each other for some years, and he gave me a big dose of advice about the route beyond El Kharga.โ€ Danbazzar paused, tensing his lips so that his abbreviated beard stuck out truculently, a peculiar mannerism which Barry had noted before. Then: โ€œThe Mudรฎrโ€™s secretary was most hospitable,โ€ he went on, โ€œand so anxious for our comfort that Iโ€™m dead sure he knew I was lying. He knew we had no more intention of visiting the oasis than he has.โ€ โ€œBut how could the truth have leaked out?โ€ John Cumberland asked. โ€œWhat about these people in the village,โ€ Barry suggested, โ€œwhere the men are quartered?โ€ Hassan es Sugra extended his palms and softly intruded with a remark. โ€œThey are of the Hawwara,โ€ he explained, โ€œor claim to be. They owe allegiance to their own sheik, and he is my friend. No, it will be some of the workmen, while in Luxor, who have been talking.โ€ โ€œThen what can we do?โ€ John Cumberland demanded. โ€œI could thrash two or three of the men,โ€ Hassan suggested gently, โ€œuntil I found one to speak the truth. โ€ Barry stared in amazement at the รฆsthetic face of the speaker, thinking that he jested; but no smile appeared. This was apparently a firm offer. โ€œNo!โ€ Danbazzarโ€™s deep voice broke in. โ€œIt would do no good. If this fellow Tawwab suspects anything—-โ€ โ€œExactly,โ€ said Professor Blackwell uneasily; โ€œthat is just what I am wondering. If he suspects anything, what will he do? Inform the Inspector of Antiquities?โ€ Danbazzar knocked ash from his cigar. The scarab ring upon his finger twinkled in the lamplight. He stared fixed at the Professor; then: โ€œHe is an Egyptian,โ€ he replied. โ€œWhat would he gain by that?โ€ โ€œAh!โ€ John Cumberland exclaimed. โ€œGain! Thatโ€™s the answer–bakhshish!โ€ โ€œUnder the present government,โ€ said Danbazzar gravely, โ€œalways!โ€ โ€œWell!โ€ Cumberland shrugged his shoulders. โ€œI came prepared to pay! Is it safe to start?โ€ โ€œI was about to ask the same question,โ€ declared Professor Blackwell, raising his gaunt and ungainly form from the low camp chair in which he was seated. โ€œYes.โ€ Danbazzar spoke deliberately, and without betraying any of the excitement which the Professor had been unable to conceal, which obviously possessed John Cumberland, and to which Barry was a restless prey. He turned to Hassan es Sugra. โ€œHassan,โ€ he directed, โ€œmake sure that allโ€™s clear.โ€ Hassan saluted deeply and went out of the tent. โ€œItโ€™s a bit of a scramble,โ€ Danbazzar warned. โ€œEverybody in fibre shoes, and donโ€™t forget your flasks.โ€ Their preparations were complete when Hassan returned with the news that the road was clear; whereupon, they set out. The route they followed was merely a native path and not one of the roads ordinarily used. For a goat or a barefooted Egyptian it was navigable enough, but what with leaping over chasms of unknown depth and scrambling up narrow funnels composed of crumbling rock, brittle as a cracker, it was not all that might have been desired by a party of townsmen out for an evening stroll. At last they came out on the hummock of a hill, and below them, magnificently outlined in shadow, lay the Valley of the Queens. Above towered that strangely shaped mountain once sacred to the goddess Hathor. Breathless, Barry leaned upon a block of stone, listening to a duet in hard breathing contributed by his father and Professor Blackwell. Danbazzarโ€™s cigar glowed in the shadows of a neighbouring rock, and Hassan es Sugra exhibited no evidence of fatigue. Awhile they paused there, and then set out again, Danbazzar and Hassan leading, John Cumberland and the Professor following, Barry bringing up the rear. Thus they went, except where broken formation of the ground necessitated single file. By what sailing marks the pilots traced their course was not apparent. But through the desolation of this land of tombs they passed, the way twisting and turning, their route being sometimes upward and sometimes downward, until at last: โ€œHere it is!โ€ said Danbazzar. Barryโ€™s weariness departed; his heart leaped. They stood before a sheer rock face, its irregular surface pitted with openings. Above a mound of drift, Hassan es Sugra began to dig with his stick, clearing sand and rubbish away. Barry watched him abstractedly: he was fighting to conquer the reality. Somewhere here, deep in the heart of this rock, she lay, the princess of long ago! She whose picture, portrayed in the papyrus, was a vivid representation of the girl he had seen on that balcony in faraway New Jersey! Here! somewhere in this ancient mountain where she had lain for thousands of years! What was the link? What did it mean? Useless! His mind refused to grapple with so monstrous a problem. โ€œSee!โ€ Hassan es Sugra turned, extending his palms. โ€œThe cartouche, sirs! As I found it a year ago!โ€ A ray from Danbazzarโ€™s electric torch shone on to the rock. All bent forward eagerly. โ€œQuite! Quite!โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell. โ€œYes, it is the same, unmistakably!โ€ Deeply carved in the surface, it was there for all to see–the curious sign which translated, meant: โ€œShe Who Sleeps but Will Awaken.โ€ Chapter 13. The Excavators. Nothing succeeds like impudence. The original plan had provided for work at night only; but the flooded state of the Nile Valley was so discouraging to tourists and interruption of labours in the remote spot where the tomb was situated so unlikely that Danbazzar at the outset decided upon day shifts and night shifts. Now definitely launched upon this unlawful project, a sort of unholy joy fired the party. It was even shared by Professor Blackwell. The plan of operations was worthy of its inventor. The entrance to the tomb lay in a fairly deep recess; and Danbazzar had constructed, in convenient sections, a huge screen–practically a piece of scenery. The material for this accounted for the presence of several strangely shaped cases among their baggage for which Barry had hitherto been unable to account. Set in place before the entrance to the tomb, with top pieces and side pieces, or wings, it was joined with sand and rubbish to the rubble of the valley path. When lovingly finished by Danbazzar–seated upon a light scaffold–with odd dabs of paint applied to a wet surface upon which sand had been thrown, the result was magical. While it slightly altered the conformation of the landscape, it was utterly impossible to detect the presence of this screen even by the closest scrutiny. One would have had to tap it to learn that it was of wood and canvas, and not of rock. Access to the interior was gained by an ingenious door, low down at one corner. This door was in reality a shallow box filled with rubble and cement and opening upward. In the space between the screen and the rock there was ample room for work, which was carried on by lantern light. With two men always on duty, one at the high end of the valley and one at the low, to give warning for operations to cease, detection was next to impossible, short of treachery on the part of an employee. On the morning that this screen was completed, Danbazzar, paint brush in hand, stood surveying his work with the pride of an artist. He turned to Barry, who stood beside him and: โ€œSome illusion, I think!โ€ said he. โ€œItโ€™s simply amazing!โ€ cried John Cumberland. โ€œI worked behind that screen, sir,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œfor three months, and not a soul but my men ever knew I was there! The last month I spent covering up what Iโ€™d found.โ€ โ€œI take it,โ€ said Cumberland, โ€œwe can soon demolish what you reconstructed?โ€ โ€œPretty soon,โ€ Danbazzar agreed. โ€œBut I had to make a sound job of it.โ€ โ€œAnyway,โ€ said Barry, โ€œfrom now onward we are safe.โ€ โ€œAs you say–โ€ Danbazzar bowed as one who acknowledges applause and gave the signal for the scaffolding to be demolished–โ€œthe dangerous part is over. Rain is the worst we have to fear now.โ€ He touched Hassan es Sugra upon the shoulder. โ€œHassan,โ€ he directed, โ€œlet the first party begin at three oโ€™clock. You have my instructions. I shall be back at five.โ€ Hassan saluted, and leaving Mahmoud in charge of the clearing up operations, walked away, slow and stately, down the valley. As it chanced, their belief in the artistic genius of Danbazzar was very shortly to be put to the test; for, returning to the camp, where they intended to remain during the heat of noon, they were met by a very courteous Egyptian official. John Cumberland started at sight of the figure wearing the tarbรปsh, but Danbazzar exhibited neither surprise nor alarm. โ€œAh! Mr. Tawwab!โ€ he cried genially. โ€œIt was real good of you to hunt us up!โ€ Mr. Tawwabโ€™s smile was noncommittal. โ€œThe Mudรฎr felt anxious about you,โ€ he explained; โ€œand learning that you had not yet started for the oasis, suggested that I should see you.โ€ โ€œWe are honoured and delighted,โ€ Danbazzar declared. โ€œAllow me to make known to you Mr. John Cumberland and Professor Blackwell–Mr. Barry Cumberland. This is Mr. Ahmed Tawwab, secretary to the Governor of Luxor. Coffee, I believe, is prepared. You will join us, Mr. Tawwab?โ€ โ€œCertainly.โ€ The Egyptian bowed, and they all entered the tent which served as dining room, office, and council chamber. Danbazzar entered last, behind Barry, and, in his ear: โ€œMischief!โ€ he whispered. The boring ceremony of coffee and cigarettes, which is indispensable to any piece of Arab business, having been duly performed: โ€œThe Mudรฎr,โ€ Mr. Tawwab explained, turning the gaze of his languorous eyes upon Danbazzar, โ€œlearns from the Mudรฎr of Asyut, that a considerable party of Hawwara Arabs, led by a sheik of the Hamman family and plainly meaning mischief, has been reported from El Kharga, in the Great Oasis. It is perhaps a political or a religious demonstration, but the Mudรฎr thought it wise to advise you that there may be danger.โ€ โ€œConvey my thanks to His Excellency,โ€ said Danbazzar gravely. โ€œWe are all most indebted.โ€ His deep voice was lowered to a sort of caressing purr; which, however, resembled that of some large member of the cat family. โ€œBut,โ€ Mr. Tawwab pursued, rolling a cigarette between his flexible fingers, โ€œI understand that you are a fairly large party, and, of course, you can make choice. He will be glad to learn, nevertheless, that his information was correct, and that this warning has reached you before your setting out.โ€ Mr. Tawwab having presently departed: โ€œWhat does this mean, exactly?โ€ John Cumberland demanded. โ€œIt means, sir,โ€ said Danbazzar grimly, โ€œthat our screen was only erected in the nick of time! We shall be watched!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ exclaimed Professor Blackwell with alarm; โ€œbut we may be arrested!โ€ Danbazzar turned his strange eyes in the speakerโ€™s direction, studying him silently for a moment; then: โ€œBefore that time comes,โ€ he replied, โ€œwe shall be invited to pay. But if we can get through without paying, all the better.โ€ โ€œDo you believe the story of the Arabs?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œNo,โ€ Danbazzar answered promptly, โ€œI donโ€™t!โ€ His fierce eyes grew very reflective. โ€œNor do I believe that Ahmed Tawwab came from the Mudรฎr at all.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t follow,โ€ said Barry. โ€œWhat is your idea about it, then?โ€ โ€œMy idea is,โ€ Danbazzar answered, โ€œthat Mr. Tawwab has discovered the identity of your father and has simply called as an ordinary matter of business. He has got wise that weโ€™re here with some secret purpose, and heโ€™s going to make us pay. It was against grafting of this sort that I budgeted when I mentioned the price for the expedition, Mr. Cumberland. Undeterred by these vague threats, operations were commenced that day. A tiny opening, a mere crevice, had been left by Danbazzar in the reclosed entrance, some ten feet above, and to the left of the inscription on the rock. The first party set to work to enlarge this, and two guards were placed where they could command all possible approaches. By nightfall, enough had been done to show that this indeed was the entrance to a narrow, sloping shaft, carefully closed at the top with stone blocks. John Cumberlandโ€™s excitement became intense. Professor Blackwell experienced much difficulty in persuading him to sleep. Throughout the afternoon and the evening not a soul had appeared in sight of the excavation, and the first day promised well for the enterprise. Barry only deserted the job when a night shift of excavators came on duty, walking back, tired but mentally exhilarated, to the camp with Hassan es Sugra. As they pursued their way through moonlight and shadow down to the little wรขdi, Barry glanced many times at his silent companion. The wonder of it all swept over him–the insanity of their dreams; the almost incredible fact that less than a month before he had been leading a rather empty life in New York. Now, he was walking through a vast cemetery peopled with kings and queens, princes, princesses, councillors, of a glorious civilization which the desert had reclaimed long ages before the name of America was known to men! The stillness seemed to become oppressive. Not even the bark of a dog could be heard. And to night no camel bells jingled on the ancient caravan road. Barry spoke at random. โ€œHow long, Hassan,โ€ he asked, โ€œshould it take to reach the tomb?โ€ โ€œIt is doubtful, sir,โ€ was the reply. โ€œPerhaps, if the stones are not too hard to be broken, only a few days, for we have many men at work. Perhaps longer; and then, we do not know if the passage is clear beyond the first portcullis. Sometimes there are two; sometimes three. And, at the bottom of the shaft, the entrance to the funeral chamber will have to be broken.โ€ โ€œBut the way in from the top? The part you closed up again last year?โ€ โ€œThat should be easy, sir. Perhaps by to morrow. But there is still all the shaft.โ€ โ€œIs that a long job?โ€ โ€œAlways,โ€ Hassan replied, โ€œit is a question of the conditions. Sometimes the air is so bad that men cannot work in these tombs.โ€ โ€œA question of Kismet, eh?โ€ said Barry. โ€œKismet, yes!โ€ Hassan es Sugra smiled in his sweetly grave way. โ€œIf it is written that we succeed, we shall succeed. If notโ€–he shrugged his shoulders–โ€œno matter!โ€ Dog tired, Barry undressed and threw himself upon his camp bed. He shared the tent with Professor Blackwell, and his last waking recollection was of the sonorous snores of that weary scientist. He seemed scarcely to have closed his eyes before he was awakened by a stray beam of morning sunlight. Someone had raised the flap of the tent. He opened his eyes. Professor Blackwell was still sleeping peacefully; but the bearded, grinning face of Mahmoud appeared in the opening. Mahmoud had a little English; and: โ€œSir!โ€ he said. โ€œI come to tell you. They make a small opening–too small for me. But this morning Hassan es Sugra goes through!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry was out of bed in one bound. โ€œYou mean he has gone into the tomb?โ€ โ€œHe goes in, Effendim, and comes out again!โ€ โ€œWhere is he?โ€ โ€œHe is there, in the valley.โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ came a harsh, sleepy voice. Professor Blackwell turned over on his elbow. โ€œTheyโ€™ve reopened the tomb, Professor!โ€ Barry cried excitedly. โ€œTheyโ€™ve reopened the tomb!โ€ โ€œImpossible!โ€ the Professor muttered, sitting upright. โ€œI never heard of such a thing!โ€ โ€œBut Hassan es Sugra has been in! Mahmoud has told me so!โ€ โ€œOh, yes!โ€ said the Professor, fumbling under his pillow for his glasses. โ€œQuite! Quite! Of course I was forgetting that it had been opened before.โ€ Mahmoud departed, grinning broadly, as Barry made a grab for his clothes. John Cumberland and Danbazzar were not in camp; and, having hastily disposed of hot coffee and biscuits, Barry and the Professor started for the excavation. They had actually come out onto the plateau looking down upon the valley, when both pulled up dead, exchanging a swift, significant glance. Unmistakable upon the still desert air, the note of a police whistle reached them! The guards were armed with these, but this was the first time there had been occasion to use them. โ€œDamnation!โ€ Barry muttered. โ€œWho can it be? Come on, Professor, letโ€™s hurry!โ€ To the great discomfiture of the older man, they performed the remainder of the journey at a fairly rapid trot. And, coming out of a narrow ravine which opened some twenty yards above the site of the excavation, they almost literally ran into Mr. Tawwab! He was standing not more than a dozen paces from Danbazzarโ€™s screen, smoking a cigarette and looking about him curiously. Chapter 14. The Haunted Valley. Prone upon a high crag Danbazzar lay, watching a horseman making his way down the slope of a distant valley and heading in the direction of the Nile. At last: โ€œHeโ€™s gone!โ€ he said, and looked back over his shoulder. John Cumberland heaved a great sigh of relief and, standing, stretched his cramped limbs. One long last look Danbazzar took at the receding figure, and then the two climbed down to the path below where Professor Blackwell and Barry awaited them. โ€œDo you think I got away with it?โ€ the latter asked. โ€œNo!โ€ Danbazzar said promptly–โ€œnot entirely. Your explanation that we had gone out for jackal was good.โ€ โ€œExcellent, in my opinion!โ€ Professor Blackwell murmured. โ€œYou are really an accomplished liar, Barry.โ€ โ€œWell,โ€ Barry explained, laughing, โ€œI knew we shouldnโ€™t find you in the camp, and some sort of explanation had to be offered. I spoke loudly enough for you to hear me behind the screen, so that if he insisted upon staying till you returned, your story would correspond with mine.โ€ โ€œUnfortunately,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œhe must have heard the whistle.โ€ โ€œHe did!โ€ declared the Professor–โ€œalthough he never once mentioned it.โ€ โ€œThat is why I know he didnโ€™t believe you,โ€ Danbazzar added. โ€œI shall go into Luxor on Monday and talk business to Mr. Tawwab.โ€ He turned to Barry. โ€œYou havenโ€™t heard the good news yet! Can you imagine that I was forced to stop work last year within a matter of hours of breaking through that portcullis?โ€ โ€œWhat do you mean?โ€ Barry cried. โ€œThey cleared the entrance,โ€ his father replied excitedly, โ€œwhich Danbazzar had reclosed, without difficulty. You see, Barry, we are provided with the very best and latest gear. They set about the portcullis, and Hassan found a flaw in the rock itself beside this otherwise immovable stone door.โ€ โ€œWhy didnโ€™t we find it last year!โ€ boomed Danbazzar. โ€œI figured that portcullis was a long, tough job!โ€ โ€œThey worked on it all night,โ€ John Cumberland went on, โ€œenlarging it—-โ€ โ€œHave you actually been in!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œNo,โ€ was the reply; โ€œthe opening isnโ€™t big enough. But Danbazzar and I were looking along the passage when we heard the whistle!โ€ โ€œHassan has been down,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œThereโ€™s an obstruction twenty feet below, but he reports the air is fairly good.โ€ โ€œBut whatโ€™s the obstruction?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œI fear another portcullis,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œBut the roof of the shaft seems to have collapsed at this point, or partly collapsed, and Hassan is uncertain whether thereโ€™s another portcullis or not. It may be a monthโ€™s work, or our job may be nearly finished. Remembering the purpose for which it was constructed, I look for a simple tomb. I should be surprised to find wells or dummy passages.โ€ โ€œCould I possibly get through?โ€ Danbazzar looked him over briefly; and: โ€œNo!โ€ he replied, โ€œbut we have dropped a light into the shaft and you can look down. The men are at work again now.โ€ Excitement rose to fever pitch. Constant relays of skilled excavators could not work fast enough for John Cumberland or for Barry. By nightfall, the hole beside the mighty stone door which closed the passage had been appreciably enlarged. But whereas their first success had been due principally to a flaw in the rock tunnel itself, progress beyond this stage was a matter of patient drilling and chipping. Danbazzarโ€™s optimism was shown to have been excessive. Hours went by in constant work; blazing days and nights of ceaseless toil; but still the great portcullis defied them. Hassan es Sugra, with the smallest men of the party, had attacked the lower obstruction. But conditions were bad. Both air and proper light were lacking. Since they could not be relieved, their progress was necessarily slow. And, meanwhile, the main gang chipped and chipped patiently at the rock tunnel surrounding the stone door. By Monday success seemed to be in sight; and as Danbazzar set out for Luxor to interview Mr. Tawwab, he gave orders touching the work on the lower passage. And so, this day, which it was written should be a memorable one, wore on. When the wonderful curtain of dusk was drawn over the valley, Danbazzar had not returned from his interview with Mr. Tawwab. pictured him patiently drinking numberless cups of coffee and smoking scores of cigarettes. Mahmoud had been out for quail in the morning, and the savoury odour of his cooking increased the appetite of the party, already keen enough at the end of an arduous and exciting day. Having performed their somewhat limited ablutions, they assembled in the tent over a surreptitious cocktail, perforce without ice. โ€œIt seems to me,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œthat this thing has developed into a race. The man Tawwab is out for blackmail. Thatโ€™s clear.โ€ โ€œCan we keep him off until we succeed, or will he hold us up?โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell. โ€œSuccess might come almost any day. What is beyond that further obstruction no one can pretend to guess. But as to what it is, from my scanty observations–for the light was very bad–I have formed a theory.โ€ โ€œWhatโ€™s your theory, Blackwell?โ€ John Cumberland asked. โ€œIt is this,โ€ the Professor continued: โ€œThat first portcullis blocking the passage was built to be raised–I am sure of it.โ€ โ€œI believe you are right,โ€ said Barry; โ€œand it worked in deep grooves.โ€ โ€œQuite! Quite!โ€ The Professor nodded. โ€œBy what means such a vast lump of rock was lifted, I leave to the greater knowledge of Danbazzar to explain. I am no Egyptologist. But I think the obstruction twenty feet down, from what I can see of it, is, or was, a second portcullis. The broken pieces look of about the same thickness as that at the top.โ€ โ€œBut why should the second be broken and not the first?โ€ Barry demanded. โ€œWhich brings me to my theory,โ€ the Professor continued. โ€œI think the second portcullis, at some time when it was raised, fell and was shattered.โ€ โ€œBy Jove!โ€ John Cumberland exclaimed. โ€œYou may be right!โ€ โ€œI am almost sure I am,โ€ the Professor said. โ€œI think I can see one of the deep grooves it worked in. If this is so, it should be fairly easy to clear the dรฉbris, and, unless there is a third portcullis, intact, why should we not then find ourselves in the actual burial chamber?โ€ โ€œItโ€™s possible,โ€ his friend admitted. โ€œLetโ€™s hope youโ€™re right.โ€ โ€œThere are no inscriptions to be seen on the walls of the passage,โ€ Barry remarked. โ€œNo,โ€ said the Professor; โ€œbut I understand that this is usual. Am I right, Cumberland?โ€ โ€œQuite right. But we may look for something very unusual in the chamber itself.โ€ They were all feverishly restless, but as their presence at the excavation merely interfered with the work, for this restlessness there was no proper outlet. Dinner concluded, and Mahmoud having cleared the table, the Professor and John Cumberland, shirt sleeves rolled up and cigars lighted, settled down to poker. Barry, pipe in mouth, sauntered out into the wรขdi, vaguely wondering why Danbazzar had not returned. Without consciously intending to do so, he found himself following the familiar path, to which he no longer required a guide. On he went and down, until he came to that little ravine which opened into the valley just above the tomb. In the nick of time he remembered the usual routine and clapped his hands sharply three times. Had he forgotten, the result would have been a blast of a police whistle and the suspension of operations! The ingeniously screened working lay in deep shadow. He could see neither of the guards, but, standing there, silent, he could hear vaguely, deep in the heart of the rock, a sound of regular muffled blows. He was tempted to open the sand trap and to penetrate to the scene of activity, but overcame the impulse and turned right, walking up the valley to where it came out on the shoulder of a hill. Here, squatting under a curious mass of rock roughly resembling a giant skull, was one of the guards, who stood up as Barry approached. โ€œLรชltak saโ€™ รฎda!โ€ said the man, saluting him. Barry echoed the words, to which he was now becoming accustomed, and passed on. The guard reseated himself under the rock. He determined to walk up as far as the ancient caravan road which crossed the crest above, a spot from which, Danbazzar had informed him, the view by moonlight was remarkable. He had counted, however, without the natural difficulties of the route. The path which he had intended to follow disappeared into midnight gullies and twined about upstanding crags. The shadowy places might be full of pitfalls. Barry paused, looking up at the ridge sharply outlined against the clear blue of the sky. Perhaps, after all, discretion was the better part of valour. He might quite easily break his neck if he attempted this climb in the darkness. He stood there for a while looking about him, and knocking out his pipe upon the heel of his bass soled shoe. These slopes above and below he knew to be literally honeycombed. This weird place, almost unreal in its colouring under the moon, was no more than a vast necropolis. A month before, with New Yorkโ€™s life pulsing around him, the thought of this desolation and of being lonely amid it would have been appalling. Yet so adaptable is human nature that already he was growing accustomed to these haunted solitudes. He began to refill his pipe. Upon a ridge fifty yards away, sharply outlined in the moonlight, a slinking shape appeared for a moment and as quickly disappeared. A jackal! Only the night before one had visited Mahmoudโ€™s pantry, had succeeded in some mysterious fashion in opening the door, and had absconded with a cold chicken, a portion of a tin of sardines, and a piece of cheese. Another, even more original in his tastes, had stolen one of Professor Blackwellโ€™s slippers. Barry determined to return to the camp by a circuitous route which he knew, and which would bring him out at the lower end of the wรขdi. Having satisfactorily lighted his briar, he set out, now walking more briskly and wondering if the night shift at work in the tomb of Zalithea had succeeded in penetrating to the second portcullis. Danbazzar, an old hand at the business, had arranged a sort of bonus system which was a constant urge to the men, and effectively abolished any possibility of slacking. If the shift which changed at twelve oโ€™clock or that which changed at four should be in a position to report that their immediate objective had been gained, they were instructed to awaken Danbazzar, or in his absence John Cumberland. Barry, stepping out briskly upon the comparatively clear path which he had chosen, conjured up a vision of the chamber in which, if their hopes should be realized, they would find Zalithea. Prior to their final departure from Luxor he had visited several characteristic tombs under the guidance of Hassan es Sugra. He imagined that the chamber of the sleeping princess would be different from any of these. His impatience was so great that he could scarcely contain himself. He doubted if even his fatherโ€™s enthusiasm was greater than his own. Danbazzar, whatever he felt, revealed little. Hassan es Sugra seemed to be removed from all human emotions. Coming to the lowest point in his descent, about half a mile below the excavation, he paused, looking about him. By moonlight the place was different. But he recalled that it did not matter which of the several paths to the left he took, since any of them would ultimately bring him to his destination, and if one should prove impassable he could always return. Crossing a flat topped mound, he descended the slope beyond and saw beneath him a rugged bowl dotted with minor ruins, probably of those stone huts which occurred in the Valley of the Kings. He stood looking down. It might be wise to avoid this valley, which no doubt contained pitfalls and across which he would have to climb rather than walk. Then, as he hesitated, suddenly he saw something–something that caused him to shrink back, to inhale sharply–to wish he were not alone. A figure was moving in the deep shadows of the hollow–a figure definitely horrible in such a place at that hour. It presented the appearance of a tall, gaunt man! There was a faint light, too, a fitful, elfin light which rose and fell–rose and fell–among the ruins! All the old confidence with which Barry had walked through this place of the dead now deserted him. He recognized that he was afraid–and was ashamed of the recognition. But he retraced his steps swiftly, never pausing or glancing back until he had regained the main path. Then, from behind him, far behind him, came a sound.โ€ฆ Someone or something was climbing up from the bowl of the little valley! In the profound silence of that place the noise was clearly audible. A jackal was out of the question; for no four footed creature is more silent than a jackal in its comings and goings. He stood still, listening intently. Footsteps!–unmistakably those of a man and not of any four footed beast! Immediately facing him where he stood was an irregular mound of rock and sand, outlined on the right by the silver of the moon, but a place of ebony shadows on the left. He crossed into the shadow and waited. Nearer and nearer came the approaching footsteps. Whoever was coming up from the valley of the ruined huts was about to enter that narrow gully through which Barry had walked! Half a dozen reasonable explanations presented themselves, but his mind rejected them one after another. Eeriness touched him with a cold finger. He watched the vague slash in a wall of darkness, which, from his present position, represented the entrance to the gully. Now, the one who approached was coming along it. In another moment he would be out. Three more paces must bring him into the light. Barryโ€™s heart was beating rapidly. He was afraid–and did not know of what he was afraid. And now he realized that the one who walked had cleared the gap, although he could not yet see any movement in the shadow. A second–two seconds–three seconds elapsedโ€ฆ and a man came out into the moonlight. It was Danbazzar! Chapter 15. The Hawwara. Automatically Danbazzarโ€™s hand dropped to his hip, the first intimation Barry had of the fact that he carried arms; then: โ€œAll right!โ€ cried Barry, and stepped out of the shadow, conscious of an almost ridiculous sense of relief. But, for a moment, Danbazzar did not move. โ€œWhat are you doing here!โ€ he demanded–for it was less a question than a demand. Barry experienced a momentary vague resentment. โ€œIf it comes to that,โ€ he replied, โ€œwhat are you doing here?โ€ Danbazzar smiled and came forward, shrugging his broad shoulders and dismissing the matter with a slow, graceful wave of his hand. โ€œI believe,โ€ said he, โ€œthat we have both got the โ€˜jumps.โ€™ I am here because my donkey boy refused to come beyond the end of the valley at this time of night. And as we have no accommodation for a donkey, I let him return to Kurna. As a matter of fact, I helped him start!โ€ โ€œI see,โ€ said Barry, meeting the fixed stare of those strange eyes. โ€œFor my part, I was taking a walk because I couldnโ€™t sleep. But werenโ€™t you prowling about in the hollow down yonder?โ€ โ€œI was,โ€ Danbazzar replied gravely. โ€œI had an idea that someone was hiding there, watching me–and I wonโ€™t be spied upon.โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s odd!โ€ said Barry; โ€œbecause I had a notion I saw someone there about five minutes ago.โ€ โ€œIs that so? What was your impression–a tall thin man?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ Barry nodded, โ€œunpleasantly like an unwrapped mummy!โ€ โ€œHumph!โ€ Danbazzar lighted a cigarette. โ€œVery queer! Evidently youโ€™re not aware of the fact that that little hollow is supposed by the Arabs to be haunted!โ€ Side by side they proceeded up the slope, Danbazzar heading confidently for the camp. He seemed to know these desolate hills as he knew every street and every alley in Cairo. For Danbazzar, Egypt had few secrets. โ€œHowever,โ€ said Barry, โ€œif we really saw anybody, it was probably some harmless eccentric who lives alone in one of the ruins.โ€ โ€œIt may have been,โ€ Danbazzar murmured, โ€œor it may not! What news of the tomb?โ€ โ€œThey are still enlarging the opening, but except for Hassan and the younger Said, no one has been through yet.โ€ โ€œIโ€™m very anxious,โ€ Danbazzar declared. โ€œYou canโ€™t be more anxious than I am!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œPossibly not,โ€ the other admitted, โ€œbut my anxiety may be different from yours. I have spent several hours to day with Mr. Tawwab.โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ Barry prompted eagerly–โ€œwhat do you think he knows?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t think he knows anything. Heโ€™s just guessing. But he takes it for granted that weโ€™re digging somewhere–for something. Weโ€™re going to be watched, or intimidated, or both!โ€ โ€œIntimidated!โ€ Barry echoed. โ€œExactly!โ€ Danbazzar nodded in his slow, grave fashion. โ€œI practically made Tawwab an offer in the roundabout ceremonious fashion which alone they understand. He intimated with equal circumlocution that he didnโ€™t think the price high enough. I told him in a complimentary speech of fifteen minutes to go to the devil. He pressed on me several cups of coffee and nasty musk scented cigarettes. Then he gave me to understand in the course of twenty minutes or more that I had his official permission to go to hell likewise. We parted perfectly good friends, though. It was a question of terms. But I think he holds the winning card.โ€ โ€œWhat do you mean?โ€ โ€œWell!โ€ Danbazzar shook his leonine head. โ€œMr. Tawwab reverted to the story of these Hawwara Arabs reported from El Kharga. I thought it was just plain lying when he spoke of it at first, but as he came back on the matter to day I knew there was more in it. He informed me, with deep regret, that a party of the Hawwara had been reported on the caravan road some five miles south of Araki.โ€ Coming from moonlight into shadow at that moment, Barry met the glance of the speakerโ€™s eyes. โ€œDo you mean,โ€ he asked, โ€œthat they are coming in this direction?โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s what Tawwab implied,โ€ Danbazzar admitted. โ€œThey must have come from the Farshรปt road, and now theyโ€™re heading our way. He professed to be much concerned about our safety, pointing out that at this season our camp was a very lonely one. Itโ€™s true enough that, after leaving Kurna, except for a few scattered houses weโ€™re pretty well isolated.โ€ โ€œBut what do you think he was driving at?โ€ said Barry. โ€œThese Arabs are surely peaceable enough?โ€ โ€œAs a rule they are,โ€ was the reply, โ€œbut a wave of fanaticism will sometimes pass through a tribe, or a section of a tribe, and then they go Mad Hatter. However, I certainly know why Tawwab kept coming back to it.โ€ โ€œWhy?โ€ โ€œTo drive the price up! He was good enough to mention that his relations with the sheik who seems to be at the head of this mysterious movement have always been of a most cordial character.โ€ โ€œThe devil take it!โ€ Barry muttered. โ€œWhy canโ€™t he mind his own business!โ€ โ€œWell,โ€ Danbazzar smiled, โ€œdepartmentally speaking, this is his business! If he handled it properly we should find ourselves under arrest to morrow! No!โ€–he shrugged his broad shoulders–โ€œMr. Tawwab holds the cards. Weโ€™ll play as long as we can play, after which we must pay.โ€ A beam of light shining out across the bottom of the wรขdi and the unmistakable rattle of poker chips signified that John Cumberland and the Professor were still at their game. The appearance of Danbazzar, however, broke it up, and, eagerly listened to by the party, he gave a detailed account of his visit to Luxor. โ€œI canโ€™t imagine any reason for the Arabs coming in this direction,โ€ said John Cumberland, when Mr. Tawwabโ€™s warning had been repeated to the party. โ€œThere can be only one reason,โ€ Danbazzar returned gravely. โ€œWhat is it?โ€ โ€œThis camp!โ€ He tensed his lips in a grim manner, reaching across for the bottle of Martell Three Stars, his favourite beverage in moments of reflection. โ€œOf course,โ€ Professor Blackwell broke in, โ€œthey may assume that we have large sums of money in our possession.โ€ โ€œThey would assume rightly!โ€ Barry remarked. โ€œCan you count on the men, Danbazzar?โ€ โ€œOn the excavators?โ€ the latter inquired, pouring out a drink and turning his eyes toward the speaker. โ€œOn every man of them. โ€œWe havenโ€™t arms enough to go round,โ€ John Cumberland murmured. โ€œOh! itโ€™s unthinkable, anyway.โ€ โ€œAll the same,โ€ said Barry, โ€œI suggest we mount guard in future–here as well as at the tomb. And as itโ€™s too late to make any other arrangements to night, I think we ought to take watches ourselves. What do you say, Dad?โ€ โ€œI agree,โ€ John Cumberland replied quietly. His face was very grave. โ€œThis is something I had not counted upon.โ€ Professor Blackwell raised his gaunt form, ducking his head to avoid contact with the sloping roof of the tent. โ€œI appoint myself first guard,โ€ he announced. โ€œIโ€™ll take the Lee Enfield.โ€ โ€œAs you like,โ€ said Danbazzar. With the heel of his riding boot he pushed a long wooden chest in the Professorโ€™s direction. Stooping, Blackwell unlocked the box. It contained a moderately extensive collection of arms. And he selected a rifle of the British service pattern. The Professor was an old campaigner; and, having charged the magazine with care, he lighted a fresh cigar, and, nodding to the others, strolled outside the tent. His footsteps might be heard receding along the wรขdi. โ€œFor many reasons, I hope we break through in the next three days,โ€ Danbazzar went on, ending a short, uncomfortable silence. He nodded his massive head in the direction of his own tent, which lay to the south. โ€œIt took years to collect the ingredients mentioned in the formula. Some of them are perishable. One oil I got from Persia six months ago is already changing colour under the influence of climate. Besides, if these things were destroyed, God knows when Iโ€™d assemble them again.โ€ โ€œBut you have the case well hidden,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œItโ€™s buried in the sand under the floor of my tent, but I donโ€™t feel too happy about it, all the same. โ€œThe papyrus!โ€ cried Barry eagerly–โ€œyou have that with you?โ€ โ€œNot on your life!โ€ Danbazzar returned. โ€œNo, sir, I have a photograph of it, and one of the formula as well. The originals are in the vault of my New York bank.โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ John Cumberland nodded, turning to Barry. โ€œI thought I had mentioned this to you.โ€ โ€œNo, Dad; I imagined we had them with us.โ€ โ€œAnd now,โ€ said Danbazzar, standing up, โ€œIโ€™m going along to look at the work. If that second portcullis is broken, thereโ€™s no reason why we shouldnโ€™t be down to the mummy chamber to morrow. Weโ€™re reaping the benefit of what I did last year. It would be better if you both remained in camp till I return. We shall have to follow some rule of this kind for the present.โ€ He took a small repeater from his pocket and dropped it in the arms chest, taking in its place a heavy revolver. When he had gone, John Cumberland looked at his son rather blankly. โ€œI hope and believe, Barry,โ€ said he, โ€œthat this thing is a big bluff. If it isnโ€™t, I shall feel inclined to withdraw.โ€ โ€œWithdraw!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œYou surely wouldnโ€™t do that!โ€ โ€œIโ€™m not thinking of the danger,โ€ the older man went on quietly, โ€œbut of the impossible position we should find ourselves in if we definitely came to blows with these Arabs. The whole plan would be exposed. I canโ€™t afford to take that risk, even if Danbazzar can.โ€ โ€œYou are thinking of the Egyptian authorities?โ€ suggested Barry slowly. โ€œI am.โ€ His father nodded. โ€œImagine the disgrace if we were arrested! No. If it comes to shooting, this party must break up. We could only hope to return at some future time, when the district was more settled.โ€ โ€œI never heard of such a thing,โ€ Barry declared. โ€œOf course, I know nothing of the country. Itโ€™s most unusual, isnโ€™t it?โ€ โ€œMost unusual,โ€ John Cumberland agreed. โ€œI confess I canโ€™t understand it. But I donโ€™t like it.โ€ In short, Mr. Tawwabโ€™s conversation with Danbazzar had created an unpleasant feeling of tension. โ€œIโ€™ll take the next watch, Dad,โ€ said Barry; โ€œyou might as well turn in. If nothing happens, we shall have a busy day before us to morrow.โ€ John Cumberland hesitated for a moment, and then stood up. โ€œYou are right,โ€ he agreed; โ€œI will. Good night!โ€ โ€œGood night, Dad.โ€ For a few minutes afterward he could hear his father talking to Professor Blackwell at the top end of the wรขdi. Then came silence again. He lighted a cigarette and helped himself to a nightcap, reflecting that he might as well have two or three hoursโ€™ sleep, although the novelty and excitement of the situation were by no means conducive to easy slumber. Presently, however, he got up and walked in the direction of his own tent. Outlined against the sky beyond he could see the gaunt figure of Professor Blackwell, rifle on shoulder; and: โ€œIs all well, Professor?โ€ he called. โ€œAllโ€™s well!โ€ cried the Professor, his voice echoing eerily from wall to wall of the wรขdi. Barry turned in fully dressed, and lay on his bed for some time listening, although he did not know for what he listened. Somewhere in the distance a jackal howled–a second–a third–a fourth–a fifth: a regiment of jackals. Then silence fell. Once he heard a distant voice. Finally he fell asleep.โ€ฆ He dreamed he was standing in the tomb of Zalithea. He was alone, and had reached the place by no visible entrance. On his right, against the wall was a wonderful gold sarcophagus. He found himself in a dreadful, pent up condition. He was utterly panic stricken. His heart was beating like a hammer. For the lid of this sarcophagus, which was hinged, was slowly, slowly, very slowly opening! Then he saw a hand appear, and in the semi darkness of the painted tomb chamber a light shone out from the interior of the sarcophagus. It grew brighter and brighter. The hand grasping the lid was a gaunt, long fingered hand. He did not know what to expect. He was in that curious state in which one realizes that one is dreaming, yet is horrified by the incidents of the dream. The lid had opened nearly wide enough to reveal the occupant, when Barry shook off the horror of the nightmare which had him in its clutch and sat suddenly upright. A sharp sound had awakened him. He was bathed in cold perspiration. And, as he leaped from his bed to the sandy floor, this sound was still echoing in the hills around. He knew, in the very moment of awakening, what it had been. The crack of a rifle! And now, here was an explanation of his half waking dream. Professor Blackwell was holding the tent flap aside. Outlined against reflected moonlight he bent, looking in. Barry heard dim voices. โ€œWhat is it?โ€ he demanded hoarsely. โ€œSsh!โ€ the Professor warned. โ€œThe Arabs!โ€ Chapter 16. The Hole In The Wall. The position of the moon had cast the greater part of the wรขdi into deep shadow. There was a gap in the irregular wall nearly opposite to Barryโ€™s tent through which a certain amount of light came, but right and left of it lay ebony darkness. As he came out and joined Professor Blackwell: โ€œThereโ€™s a party of Arabs up on the caravan road!โ€ said the latter in a low, urgent voice. โ€œWhere is my father?โ€ Barry whispered. โ€œHere I am, Barry!โ€ came a reply out of the darkness. โ€œSpeak softly. Voices carry for miles in this place.โ€ Barry groped his way in the direction of the speaker. โ€œIs Danbazzar here?โ€ he asked. โ€œIโ€™m right here!โ€ Danbazzar answered in a harsh whisper; then, speaking more softly: โ€œWho fired that shot?โ€ he demanded. โ€œI donโ€™t know,โ€ Professor Blackwell returned. โ€œIt came from high up in the mountains. It must have been one of the Arabs.โ€ โ€œI wonder!โ€ murmured John Cumberland. โ€œI make the time half after two. The second shift comes on at four. So that no one is likely to have been moving–unless one of the watchmen may have seen something.โ€ โ€œSssh ssh!โ€ came a warning. โ€œLook!โ€ High on the ridge above them, like some spirited ebony statue, the figure of a horseman appeared, a magnificent silhouette against the deepening blue of the sky! A moment he remained there. Then–no sound reaching their ears–he disappeared magically, as he had come! โ€œI want someone to go up to the excavation.โ€ It was Danbazzar speaking in a suppressed undertone. โ€œShall I go and leave you in charge, Mr. Cumberland, or—-โ€ โ€œIโ€™ll go!โ€ Barry volunteered promptly. โ€œYou may be wanted here.โ€ โ€œItโ€™s just possible,โ€ Danbazzar went on, โ€œthat something may have gone wrong there. It is also possible they maynโ€™t know the Arabs are here. Order everybody to stay under cover except the guards. All work to be suspended till further instructions. Got it clear?โ€ โ€œAll set,โ€ Barry replied promptly. โ€œBe careful, my boy,โ€ said John Cumberland; โ€œand donโ€™t forget the signal, or our own men may attack you, if they are on the qui vive.โ€ A big muscular hand grasped his. โ€œHere,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œtake this.โ€ He found a service revolver thrust into his fingers. Thereupon he set off, rejoicing in the adventure yet wishing that Jim Sakers could have been there to share it with him. He moved with great caution. In this desert stillness, the slightest sound was audible for miles. โ€ฆ At some points in the journey, the wรขdi left behind, that ridge along which the caravan road ran was visible; at other points it became lost to view. But always Barry slunk in the shadows, sometimes dropping prone and wriggling for several yards, in order that he might take advantage of some narrow belt of shadow; ever conscious, when the dangerous ridge was in sight, of the possibility of being seen, or worse–of being shot. Yet the very shadows that befriended him held their own terrors. Some spies of the fanatical Arabs might lurk there. But without sight of the band, and having heard no sound to indicate the presence of any living thing on the plateau above, he came to that midnight gully which opened out immediately above the tomb. Peering from the end of it, he clapped his hands very softly. An answering signal came from the top of the slope. He surmised that the guard at the lower end was out of hearing. Mentally reviewing what he knew of the course of the caravan road, he determined that from no point upon it was this valley visible. He surveyed the rocky face of the mountain before him, his glance travelling along uninterrupted by any oddity due to Danbazzarโ€™s screen–that miracle of camouflage. He crossed and hurried to the trap, pausing a moment before he raised it. Very softly he clapped his hands again. An answering signal came from beyond the canvas. Gently he lifted the shallow box of sand, turned, and groped with his foot for the first of the wooden steps below. Finding this, he stood upon it, ducked his head, and lowered the trap. He took three steps, walking backward, then turned, and stared up a little incline. Above him, a lantern was set upon a heap of dรฉbris in the yawning entrance to the tomb. And where dim light shone upward upon his ascetic face stood Hassan es Sugra, smiling with gentle melancholy. No sound came from the depths of the tunnel. โ€œHassan!โ€ said Barry. โ€œThe Hawwara Arabs are here!โ€ Hassan bowed gravely and extended his hand to help Barry up the slope. โ€œI know, sir,โ€ he replied. โ€œWe heard the shot, and I ordered everyone to be silent.โ€ โ€œDid they fire at one of the watchmen?โ€ Barry asked, scrambling up beside the speaker. Hassan shook his head slowly. โ€œNo,โ€ he said, โ€œI do not know why the shot was fired, but everything was stopped until news came from outside.โ€ His gentle eyes, which were so like the eyes of a gazelle, held a curious light. Later Barry determined that it had been an indication of excitement. Now, squatting about among the dรฉbris of the excavation in the curious artificial cave created by the screen, he saw a group of workmen. Some chewed, one of them was smoking, and they all regarded him with glances in which only smiling curiosity could be read. He stared down into the haunted depths of the shaft, and then back again to Hassan es Sugra. โ€œIt was written that we should succeed,โ€ said Hassan. โ€œWhat?โ€ Barry demanded, conscious of a new tingling in his veins. โ€œIt was the work done last year,โ€ Hassan continued calmly, โ€œwhich made it possible. If we had known, sir, with a little more time and trouble we could have completed. The second portcullis is broken. I cannot say how it was broken. But we have made a way through.โ€ โ€œWell!โ€ Barry cried. โ€œWhatโ€™s below?โ€ โ€œA small square chamber,โ€ Hassan replied, โ€œwithout any decorations. On the right is a doorway. It has been closed with square blocks and cemented up. We have removed one of these blocks without great difficulty. When the warning came I had just shone the light of a torch through the opening, sir, which the workmen had made.โ€ โ€œYes!โ€ Barry grasped his arm hard. โ€œIt is the burial chamber,โ€ Hassan went on calmly. โ€œA great granite sarcophagus is there, untouched.โ€ Almost too excited for speech, Barry pointed, and Hassan, gravely inclining his head, took from beneath his robe a pocket torch. Stooping, he led the way down the shaft. At the side of the first portcullis was an irregular opening wide enough for a man to squeeze through. Hassan went first and then so directed the light of his torch as to assist Barry to follow. โ€œNow, sir,โ€ he said, as the latter joined him in the lower part of the tunnel, โ€œbe careful here. The roof has fallen. It is this, I think, that broke the second door.โ€ Bending forward, and at one point going on all fours, the two pressed on. Presently, climbing through a gap not more than eighteen inches high, over a mass of broken granite which seemed to have fallen from a deep cavity in the roof, Barry suddenly remembered Professor Blackwellโ€™s theory about the second portcullis. The heat in the lower part of the shaft was oppressive, but having proceeded for another twenty feet the descent ceased. They found themselves in a small, square chamber hewn out of living rock, some three paces across, and perhaps nine feet high. At first glance the wall upon the right resembled that in front and that upon the left; but the trained eye of Hassan es Sugra had almost immediately detected the trick. It was plaster covering square blocks–in part at least. This plaster had been chipped away–it was several inches in thickness–over a space of a square yard or so. Beams of wood and all sorts of excavatorsโ€™ implements lay about the apartment. And, presumably by means of these, one of the blocks had been forced into the chamber beyond. The effect was that of a small square window in a very thick wall. โ€œTake the torch, please,โ€ said Hassan, โ€œand shine it through and a little to the left.โ€ He passed the torch to Barry. And the latter was surprised to find that his hand was shaking slightly. Hassan es Sugra smiled. โ€œTriumph is sometimes terrible, as well as defeat,โ€ he said. Barry grasped the light and thrust it forward into the opening. A beam shone out before him, upon a rose sandstone sarcophagus! The covering was accurately in place. Clearly no human hand had touched it for centuries. He experienced a curious choking sensation. He turned the light slowly, so that the beam moved along the top of the sarcophagus lid and beyond, upon the wall of the chamber. The wall was brilliantly and beautifully painted. Immediately before him, slightly to the right of the sarcophagus, the disk of white light came to rest. Barry could feel his heart thumping against the rough stone upon which he rested. He was staring at a symbol in high relief, exquisitely coloured. It was that which meant: โ€œShe Who Sleeps but Who Will Awaken.โ€ Chapter 17. Mr. Tawwab Comes To Terms. โ€œIn my opinion,โ€ said Professor Blackwell, โ€œthe whole thing might be described as a demonstration.โ€ John Cumberland nodded. โ€œI agree with you,โ€ said he. โ€œYou are right,โ€ Danbazzar confirmed, โ€œand weโ€™ll have proof of it in the next few hours.โ€ โ€œIn what form?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œA visit from Mr. Ahmed Tawwab!โ€ Danbazzar tensed his lips, looking fiercely from face to face. The anxious night was ended, and in the light of early morning this was a somewhat haggard company. Danbazzar with Hassan es Sugra had been up onto the crest and had explored the Farshรปt caravan road for some five miles northwest of the camp, but had found no trace of the Arabs. It was possible that they were still somewhere in the vicinity, but Danbazzar considered this unlikely. โ€œWeโ€™ll drive right on!โ€ he boomed. โ€œI wouldnโ€™t check now for a million dollars! The work below canโ€™t be heard in the valley, and all we have to watch for is that weโ€™re not seen coming or going.โ€ โ€œMahmoud tells me that two or three of the men are nervous,โ€ said Barry. โ€œWhat about?โ€ his father inquired–โ€œthe Arabs?โ€ โ€œYes.โ€ โ€œTheyโ€™d better keep their nerves out of sight!โ€ roared Danbazzarโ€™s great voice. โ€œIf Hassan sees any signs of nerves heโ€™ll knock stars out of them!โ€ โ€œA most surprising character,โ€ Professor Blackwell murmured. โ€œHeโ€™s the most efficient headman, sir,โ€ Danbazzar assured him, โ€œat this kind of work that ever came out of Egypt. Weโ€™re surely lucky to have him.โ€ โ€œQuite!โ€ said the Professor. โ€œI quite agree.โ€ Mahmoud, grinning cheerfully, appeared with steaming coffee, and as the sun crept up into the sky the vapours of the night disappeared. Triumph was in sight. The discovery of the granite sarcophagus, alone, in John Cumberlandโ€™s opinion justified the expedition. โ€œEven if it were empty,โ€ said he, โ€œits existence confirms the authenticity of the papyrus.โ€ โ€œIt wonโ€™t be empty,โ€ Danbazzar asserted confidently. โ€œThat lid has never been moved since a Rameses reigned in these parts. When early tomb robbers have been at work, itโ€™s generally found smashed. Certainly they would never have taken the trouble to put it back again.โ€ โ€œThere is another possibility,โ€ Professor Blackwell interrupted. โ€œI believe it was Dr. Rittenburg who mentioned it: the possibility that the story of Princess Zalithea was merely a sort of religious ceremonial. I am disposed to share his theory. I seem to recall that no bull has ever been found in the Apis mausoleum. The sarcophagi are all empty.โ€ John Cumberland, behind the speakerโ€™s back, pulled a wry face. โ€œTrue enough, Blackwell,โ€ he admitted; โ€œbut then the lids had all been moved!โ€ โ€œQuite, quite!โ€ the Professor said. โ€œThe parallel is not exact, I agree.โ€ โ€œThereโ€™s no damned parallel at all!โ€ boomed Danbazzar. โ€œInside this granite sarcophagus thereโ€™s a wooden sarcophagus, and in that thereโ€™s a mummy!โ€ โ€œHow long will it take to remove the other blocks?โ€ Barry asked excitedly. โ€œWe ought to be in to night!โ€ was the reply. โ€œItโ€™s an easy job. That doorway was only temporarily walled up–as we might have expected.โ€ โ€œAnd what about lifting the lid?โ€ โ€œWe have a set of jacks for the purpose, Barry,โ€ his father replied. โ€œThey are in the cases that were shipped from Birmingham to Port Said. It is this sort of heavy gear that makes our position so dangerous. If Mr. Tawwab saw those jacks, for instance—-โ€ โ€œQuite!โ€ said Professor Blackwell, and poured out another cup of coffee, to which he added a finger of rum. Danbazzar had brought some mail across from Luxor, including a cable for Barry from Jim Sakers, which had infuriated the former to the very limits of endurance. It was conceived as follows: Called on Mr. Brown yesterday afternoon. Door was opened by Princess. Recognized description. Height five eight. Age fifty two. Weight thirteen ten. She carried a rolling pin at beginning of interview and threw it at end of same. Congratulations. Jim. There was also a letter from Aunt Micky touching briefly upon the principal causes of dysentery in hot climates and emphasizing the claims of Vichy water as a dentifrice. There was much home chat about mutual friends, and then a brief postscript which read: Avoid Nile boils. I had one on my honeymoon. Barry hurried back to the excavation, his father accompanying him. Danbazzar had a number of arrangements to make in regard to the transport of necessary implements to the tomb, and it was considered desirable that one representative of the party should remain in camp. Therefore Professor Blackwell remained. And so it happened that late in the afternoon, while the Professor sat in the shade before his tent, studying through a magnifying glass a number of small bones from the arm of a mummy, neatly arranged upon a sheet of white paper, he started suddenly and looked up from his task. The cause of his disturbance was a distant shot. It came from somewhere between the camp and Kurna, and ordinarily it would not have aroused especial interest. This morning it had a particular meaning. Professor Blackwell placed the specimens inside the tent, and, standing up, clapped his hands sharply. An Arab appeared from the kitchen. In the absence of Mahmoud, who was a specialist in the kind of work now going forward in the tomb of Zalithea, this man was preparing the midday meal. But he had other duties; and, as he saluted the Professor: โ€œDanbazzar Effendi!โ€ said the latter, and pointed southwest. The Arab saluted again and set off at a steady trot along the wรขdi. Professor Blackwell peered into the kitchen. He found nothing more formidable going forward than the slow stewing of a sort of vegetable ragout; and so he contentedly lighted his pipe, which had gone out. Already the morning was uncomfortably hot, and Professor Blackwellโ€™s costume must have occasioned some little comment had he seen fit to wear it before a class of students at Columbia. It consisted of canvas shoes, B.V.Dโ€™s and a sun helmet. The more exposed parts of his person presented a glistening appearance, occasioned by the presence of a certain pungent oil with which he anointed himself against the onset of mosquitoes and sand flies. About half an hour later Danbazzar appeared, followed by the Arab messenger. His was a picturesque and attractive figure. His great height and breadth of shoulder appeared to best advantage in such attire as he wore now: A very clean white shirt with sleeves rolled up above the elbow, the low pointed collar unbuttoned, white breeches, and tan riding boots. He wore also a soft felt hat, wide brimmed, light gray in colour, and he held a cigar between his small, strong looking teeth. โ€œYou got the signal?โ€ he asked abruptly. Professor Blackwell nodded. โ€œHalf an hour ago,โ€ he replied. โ€œThen we can expect him almost any time,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œHave you got everything ready to be moved up to the tomb?โ€ the Professor asked. โ€œYes.โ€ Danbazzar nodded. โ€œIโ€™m only waiting to get the measure of Tawwab. Then Iโ€™ll shoot it all along.โ€ They were apparently deep in conversation and quite unaware of the presence of any stranger, when presently Ahmed Tawwab strolled into the wรขdi. He was smoking a cigarette and looking about him, as one who lounges in Bond Street, or idly glances at the notices in the lobby of his club. Danbazzar suddenly saw him, and: โ€œWhy! Mr. Tawwab!โ€ he exclaimed, and jumped up. โ€œLook, Professor, whoโ€™s here!โ€ โ€œSurely, Mr. Tawwab?โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œHow fortunate you find us at home!โ€ Mr. Tawwab agreed that Fate had indeed been very kind, coffee was prepared, and a perfectly meaningless conversation began. After a long time: โ€œMr. Cumberland and your other young friend will be returning shortly?โ€ Mr. Tawwab inquired. โ€œProbably in an hour or so,โ€ Danbazzar assured him. โ€œThey are visiting one of the more interesting tombs.โ€ โ€œAh! the tombs–Yes. I thought they might be shooting.โ€ โ€œShooting?โ€ Danbazzar echoed. โ€œNo, I donโ€™t think so; not this morning.โ€ โ€œI thought I heard a shot,โ€ Mr. Tawwab explained, โ€œdown on the edge of the swampy ground, to the left of the road. You know the spot I mean?โ€ โ€œQuite!โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell. โ€œQuite! It might have been one of our fellows after quail.โ€ โ€œSure it might,โ€ Danbazzar agreed. โ€œWeโ€™re devils for poultry in this camp.โ€ โ€œYou are wise, however, in delaying your departure,โ€ said the Egyptian. โ€œHow is that?โ€ Professor Blackwell asked politely. โ€œWell,โ€ Mr. Tawwab extended his palms apologetically, โ€œit is not to our credit to say so, but the whole of the country west of the Nile, from here across to Farshรปt or even further north, is in a somewhat disturbed condition. In factโ€–he sighed reflectively–โ€œthe Mudรฎr, I am sure, would feel more happy if you would return to Luxor.โ€ โ€œThat would cheer him up, would it?โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œIt would be most agreeable to him,โ€ Mr. Tawwab assured the speaker. โ€œMuch as we are indebted for the offer,โ€ said Danbazzar gravely, โ€œI fear that to return to Luxor would interfere with our plans.โ€ โ€œWe should never forgive ourselves,โ€ Mr. Tawwab murmured, โ€œif you were molested in any way. Even if you were not harmed personally, your property might be destroyed, or stolen. I dislike to think of it.โ€ โ€œSo do I,โ€ Professor Blackwell declared. โ€œWe know rather more about the nature of the disturbance,โ€ Tawwab pursued evenly, โ€œthan when you called upon us. It is a matter concerning the collection of certain revenues. Concessions demanded by the Sheik Ishmail we are not, as a matter of fact, prepared to grant. But, oddly enough, the negotiations have been left practically in my hands, as I know the Sheik Ishmail quite intimately.โ€ โ€œI rather thought you did,โ€ said Danbazzar, with a large, amiable smile. He exchanged a significant glance with Professor Blackwell, and the latter, by a prearranged plan, stood up glancing at his wrist watch. โ€œI have a few notes to make on the subject of those mummy bones,โ€ he murmured, โ€œand thereโ€™s only just time before lunch. Perhaps, Mr. Tawwab, you will excuse me for a few minutes?โ€ Mr. Tawwab also stood up and bowed most ceremoniously as the Professor departed to his own tent. This haven reached, Blackwell produced the paper of small bones again, and ostentatiously spread them upon a table before his door. The interview between Danbazzar and Mr. Tawwab occupied an inordinately long time. Two relays of coffee were requisitioned, and at intervals Danbazzarโ€™s great voice was raised in a manner rather unparliamentary. But as the debate was throughout conducted in Arabic, Professor Blackwell could only assume that the question was one of terms. It was ultimately settled amicably, however, Mr. Tawwab expressing his profound regret that he could not wait for the return of Messrs. John and Barry Cumberland. But important official business demanded his speedy reappearance in Luxor. As Danbazzar walked beside him along the wรขdi, one large hand laid caressingly on his shoulder, the contrast between his slight Egyptian figure and the great bulk of his companion was notable. Professor Blackwell derived an odd impression that Danbazzar would have loved to twist Mr. Tawwabโ€™s neck. Having escorted him to where a servant waited with two horses, Danbazzar threw a stump of cigar upon the sand and selected a fresh one from several which he kept loose in the breast pocket of his white shirt. He bit off the end and spat it out reflectively, standing, a huge, picturesque figure, staring after the horsemen. When presently he rejoined Professor Blackwell: โ€œHow much?โ€ the latter asked, standing up to greet him. โ€œTen thousand piastres for the first week,โ€ Danbazzar replied calmly, and critically surveyed the end of his lighted cigar, which he extracted from between his teeth apparently for no other purpose; โ€œtwenty thousand piastres for the second week; forty thousand piastres if we stay over into a third, and so on. In other words, if we stayed for three months weโ€™d need to send an SOS to Mr. Rockefeller! Thatโ€™s our rent, and weโ€™ve got to pay it!โ€ โ€œQuite, quite!โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œFive hundred dollars for the first week, a thousand dollars for the second, and two thousand dollars for the third, or any part of the third, during which we remain here. Is that the figure?โ€ โ€œYou said it.โ€ โ€œAnd suppose John Cumberland declines to submit to this extortion?โ€ โ€œLetโ€™s suppose.โ€ Danbazzar dropped down upon a small packing case which sometimes served as a chair. โ€œIn the first place, weโ€™d be raided to night by some scurvy bunch of Arabs in the pay of Tawwab. If we came out smiling, from to morrow onward weโ€™d be watched so closely the game wouldnโ€™t be worth the candle. He would then threaten official interference. And if we kept right on smiling, thereโ€™d be another raid–and theyโ€™d take our shirts! Theyโ€™d also take our excavation and every expletive thing they could find in it! The real shape of our job in the valley shown up, Mr. Tawwab would next suggest, say a hundred thousand piastres to let us go home to America. Alternative–send us to Cairo for trial! Professorโ€–he extended his palms in an extravagant imitation of Ahmed Tawwabโ€™s favourite gesture–โ€œhe has walked away with my check on the National Bank of Egypt for ten thousand piastres. Weโ€™ve got a clear week.โ€ โ€œDo you think he will stick to his bargain?โ€ โ€œCertainly not!โ€ roared Danbazzar, and brought his hand down with a resounding bang on the side of the box, so that it emitted a drumlike note. โ€œIf we were ready to move in three days, it would make no difference. Heโ€™d want at least another fifty thousand piastres to let us leave Luxor.โ€ โ€œIt is expensive,โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œIt would be,โ€ Danbazzar returned, โ€œif we paid it.โ€ Chapter 18. The Lotus Sarcophagus. The sun was casting its last shafts of gold across the fringe of the Libyan Desert when Barry Cumberland stepped over the threshold and entered the tomb of Zalithea. He had pleaded for this privilege, and it had been granted to him. Danbazzar and John Cumberland followed, Professor Blackwell hard upon their heels; and Hassan es Sugra, smiling in gentle triumph, brought up the rear. Sweat grimed workmen crowded the outer chamber.โ€ฆ No inscription of any kind appeared upon the sides or lid of the great granite sarcophagus, but the walls were very beautifully painted. The atmosphere was so oppressive as to be almost insupportable. There was something awesome in this sudden silence which had succeeded upon clamour. Danbazzar was the first to break it. โ€œThe name of Princess Zalithea,โ€ he said, his deep voice oddly hushed, โ€œoccurs, as you can see, in several places.โ€ He directed the ray of his torch from point to point. โ€œMuch of the decorations–such as the procession of boats, the Sem priest in his mystic trance, the funeral offerings, and so forth–are quite conventional in character. You will notice, though, that the Lotus constantly occurs, as well as the Ankh, emblem of eternal life.โ€ He shone the light all around. โ€œThere are other important points, too,โ€ he mused, โ€œwhich we can look into later. Be very careful. Touch nothing.โ€ Barry, wholly absorbed in his own peculiar reflections, was passing around the sarcophagus; feeling its surface with his fingers; peering into the tiny crevices between the lid and the lip. Meanwhile, Danbazzar and John Cumberland were bending almost reverently over a strangely shaped, squat table on which were salvers, bowls, curious looking phials, and a number of tall, slender lamps. โ€œObserve,โ€ said Danbazzar, a note of triumph in his deep voice: โ€œthese are not the usual funerary offerings!โ€ Professor Blackwellโ€™s long bony fingers were extended toward one of the phials, but: โ€œNo, no! Blackwell!โ€ cried John Cumberland excitedly. โ€œDonโ€™t touch it! Touch nothing! It may crumble!โ€ The Professor withdrew his greedy hand reluctantly. โ€œAnd I wonder what that casket contains?โ€ he murmured. The casket to which he referred, an exquisitely carved object, stood by itself upon a sort of pedestal, some little distance from the table and beside a long, low couch, the legs carved to represent the feet of a leopard. Danbazzar almost imperiously waved him to silence. Then, turning his back to the sarcophagus, the table, and the pedestal, he addressed them as a speaker addresses an audience. โ€œThe casket, gentlemen,โ€ he said, โ€œas well as the bowls and bottles, contains the ingredients mentioned in the formula! I have seen enough already to tell me my preparations are complete. Presently, Professorโ€–he turned to Professor Blackwell–โ€œmaybe you can assist me in checking these; but the task of preserving many of the fragments is going to be a delicate one. We mustnโ€™t forget theyโ€™re three thousand years old.โ€ โ€œIt is almost more than I can believe!โ€ declared John Cumberland rapturously. Barry, one hand resting upon the sarcophagus, faced him, and: โ€œDad,โ€ he said, โ€œitโ€™s altogether more than I can believe!โ€ โ€œWhat?โ€ Danbazzar demanded. โ€œThat here before us, perished but recognizable, lie the ingredients of the formula as they were prepared by the last priest to wake Zalithea, for the use of his successor?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ Barry replied: โ€œthatโ€™s hard enough–but what I cannot believe is that the woman who is the centre of this incredible story lies here, in this sarcophagus!โ€ โ€œPersonally, my mind is open!โ€ Professor Blackwell asserted, glancing around him. โ€œThere is no other entrance to this chamber?โ€ โ€œNone whatever,โ€ Danbazzar confirmed. โ€œTherefore,โ€ the Professor went on, shaking perspiration from his high brow, โ€œwe are the first explorers, since this amazing ritual came to an end for reasons which, probably, we shall never know.โ€ He glanced aside at the sarcophagus. โ€œItโ€™s uncanny,โ€ he murmured, โ€œthe thought that inside those walls of granite—- But, no! I stick to my opinion!โ€ โ€œHow long will it take to raise the lid?โ€ Barry interrupted. John Cumberland, hot, tired, met his sonโ€™s glance with one fired by no less enthusiasm. โ€œWith the aid of the apparatus which we have with us, Barry,โ€ he answered, โ€œnot long. You agree, Danbazzar?โ€ The latter, who was less excited than the others–always excepting Hassan es Sugra–bowed in his old world manner. โ€œWeโ€™ll have that lid off in an hour!โ€ he declared. โ€œBut before we start there are quite a lot of precautions we have to take.โ€ฆโ€ Two hours later the gear for lifting the great granite lid was brought from its hiding place; and everything was put in order for the operation, the result of which would prove or disprove Dr. Rittenburgโ€™s theory now shared by Professor Blackwell that Princess Zalithea was a myth; that no such person had ever existed; that the tradition was a priestly invention designed to impress the vulgar mind. Ever distrustful of Ahmed Tawwab, guards armed with rifles had been placed at selected spots northwest of the camp along the caravan road to Farshรปt; these reinforcing the ordinary guards in the valley. The wildest excitement prevailed among the party. Apparently, as well as Barry could make out, apart from the problematical contents of the sarcophagus, the objects found in the tomb were in many ways unique. There was an exquisitely embossed bowl, which, he learned, was of pure gold. The figures upon it were apparently different from any found hitherto. Professor Blackwell succeeded in identifying seven of the substances found, in the vials and the casket, as identical with those mentioned in the formula possessed by Danbazzar. One or two defied speculation, or the Professorโ€™s knowledge, until Danbazzar enlightened him as to their nature. Whereupon he recognized them, but raised his voice in doubt respecting the possibility of obtaining these at the present day. โ€œI have obtained them!โ€ Danbazzar assured him. โ€œWhen the time comes, you shall see them. Oh! Iโ€™ve been busy, Professor. Where the Ancient Egyptians got these things God only knows! They canโ€™t have had a colony in Russia in those days.โ€ โ€œRussia!โ€ the Professor echoed. โ€œI said Russia,โ€ Danbazzar affirmed. โ€œOne of the ingredients–the one we have been arguing about–I ultimately got from Russia!โ€ โ€œYou refer to the substance which you tell me is of mammalian origin?โ€ โ€œPrecisely.โ€ โ€œMammals have been found in Africa,โ€ the Professor murmured.โ€ฆ And so in the atmosphere of excited debate and unceasing toil the day wore on. Hassan es Sugra never left the tomb. It would have been impossible for any workman to remove a grain of dust from it and escape the scrutiny of those gazelle like eyes. Barryโ€™s enthusiasm was such that the tedious methods employed by Danbazzar for raising the lid of the sarcophagus tortured him to the borders of frenzy. At one point: โ€œWhy all these precautions?โ€ he cried. โ€œIt would need a steam hammer to crack that lid!โ€ โ€œSurely it would,โ€ Danbazzar returned gravely. โ€œWhatโ€™s the big point?โ€ โ€œThe point is,โ€ said Barry, โ€œthat you are making a perfectly preposterous fuss about lifting it–as though it would matter very much if we dropped it!โ€ โ€œI see!โ€ Danbazzar spoke softly, regarding the younger man through half closed eyes. โ€œIf you were lying in a stone chest next to hermetically sealed, and somebody dropped half a ton of granite on top of itโ€–his voice suddenly rose, booming around the enclosed chamber–โ€œwhere in hell do you think youโ€™d be?โ€ โ€œGood Lord!โ€ Barry was startled. โ€œOf course! You are quite right!โ€ โ€œYouโ€™d be dead of concussion!โ€ Danbazzar shouted. โ€œThundering concussion! This is my business–and Iโ€™ll do it my own way!โ€ He was formidable in his sudden anger, and Barry realized that he had committed an unforgivable faux pas–that of criticizing an artist in the practice of his profession. โ€ฆ The coming of dusk found the raising gear in place to Danbazzarโ€™s satisfaction, at which point he cleared the tomb, leaving Hassan es Sugra on guard in the outer chamber. โ€œThe eight oโ€™clock shift will start the lifting,โ€ he pronounced. โ€œWe all want dinner, so weโ€™ll all have it.โ€ John Cumberland, sweat grimed but happy, looked up from the task which he had been performing side by side with the Arab workmen. Barry leaned up against the rugged masonry beside the opening and mopped his forehead with a very dirty handkerchief. โ€œItโ€™s torture to quit,โ€ he declared honestly, โ€œbut you are right, Danbazzar. I am dead tired. Arenโ€™t you, Dad?โ€ โ€œI am!โ€ his father admitted. โ€œI would give a big price for a real hot bath before dinner!โ€ โ€œIt would be most acceptable,โ€ declared Professor Blackwell. โ€œAssociation with these very worthy natives adds to oneโ€™s knowledge of humanity but results in so many fleas!โ€ They returned to camp in the wรขdi, taking turns in the portable bath supervised by the grinning Mahmoud. This was a rare luxury, for water had to be brought a great distance, and inadequate though these baths might be, they were keenly appreciated by the party. All brought keen appetites to dinner, which was well up to Mahmoudโ€™s standard. Having reached coffee into which they were forced to pour their cognac, lest Mahmoud should see the bottle which they kept concealed in the sand, or, worse, smell the glasses: โ€œTo night,โ€ said Danbazzar, selecting a cigar, โ€œthe lid of the sarcophagus will be raised.โ€ โ€œWhat then?โ€ cried Barry. โ€œThereโ€™ll be an inner sarcophagus,โ€ was the reply, โ€œprobably of sycamore and elaborately painted. Our next task will be to raise that, which wonโ€™t be difficult. Nor will the opening of the wooden lid; but–โ€ he paused, carefully lighted his cigar and rolled it between his fingers for a moment–โ€œIโ€™m going to give orders, and in these orders you are included, Mr. Cumberland.โ€ โ€œI am at your service,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œYou know more of this business than I do.โ€ โ€œVery well,โ€ Danbazzar went on. โ€œThe raising of the second lid will be easy. But it wonโ€™t be raised until I say the word.โ€ โ€œWhy?โ€ cried Barry. Danbazzar turned to him. โ€œBecause,โ€ he answered, โ€œthe raising of that lid will be the first critical moment. We donโ€™t know what we shall find. We donโ€™t care to think what we shall find. But we have to suppose that there is a woman there–in what we might describe as a trance. Nowโ€–he performed a slow, impressive gesture–โ€œaccording to the formula, as youโ€™ll remember, Mr. Cumberland, there must be no delay between the opening of the sarcophagus and the beginning of the ceremony for waking the sleeper.โ€ โ€œGood heavens!โ€ exclaimed Professor Blackwell. โ€œIs this some strange dream?โ€ โ€œIt may be,โ€ Danbazzar admitted, โ€œbut we have to suppose that it isnโ€™t. Also, we have to suppose, or rather to remember, that the Princess Zalithea, if sheโ€™s there and still living, last saw this world in the days of the Pharaohs!–according to my calculations, about the time of Rameses the Ninth. Letโ€™s put ourselves in her place. If we arenโ€™t all crazy–if those old priests werenโ€™t all crazy–she will suddenly find herself surrounded by a group of wild eyed devils–I include myself–wearing fantastic clothes and speaking a barbaric language! Now this canโ€™t be. Think a minute!โ€ โ€œI follow you entirely,โ€ said Professor Blackwell. โ€œQuite! Quite! And I see what you are about to propose.โ€ โ€œGood for you, Professor!โ€ Danbazzar nodded appreciatively. โ€œWeโ€™ve got to dress the part, and I came prepared for it.โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry exclaimed. โ€œYes, sir,โ€ Danbazzar went on; โ€œwhen we take that lid off, we have got to be dressed like Ancient Egyptians!–and we have got to be silent! Leave the talking to me. I have the outfit. Does everybody agree?โ€ Everybody agreed.โ€ฆ They did not linger long over their coffee, but hurried back to the excavation. Guards were posted as on the previous night. Excitement ran higher than ever. They worked, and the Arabs worked, under the direction of Hassan es Sugra, like men whose lives depended upon their speedy success. But the eight oโ€™clock shift had returned to quarters and the twelve oโ€™clock shift were near to their time of departure, before the great lid was raised high enough to enable them to explore the interior of the granite coffin. Not one of the party was wholly master of himself. Barry experienced an unfamiliar desire either to laugh or to cry. But, composure regained, light was directed into the interior.โ€ฆ It contained a magnificent wooden sarcophagus, highly gilded and painted. The lid, which was in relief, represented the figure of the occupant–a girl, clad in a gauzy robe, her hands clasped upon her bosom and holding a Lotus flower. The Ankh–symbol of life–was at her head and her feet. The presentment was wonderful–uncanny. Barryโ€™s mood changed. He felt suddenly sick. He believed that he was likely to swoon. The eyes, the hair, the full lips, the slender, cloudily clad figure! This was madness! He stood upright, his hand on his brow. Perspiration was dripping into his eyes. It was she! It was the girl of his dreams! More, far more than a coincidence, this was a miracle–or a delusion! Chapter 19. The Voice In The Valley. The hours that followed were feverish hours. They were marked by at least one strange event. Barryโ€™s excitement grew so intense that the mere idea of sleep was out of the question. If he had had his way, the wonderful painted lid would have been torn off and the occupant revealed within a very few minutes of its discovery. But Danbazzar sternly took command. The tomb was cleared; the triumphant workmen were sent off to their quarters; all operations were suspended until morning. And on this point Danbazzar proved adamant. In view of the advanced state of the work, and of what interference at this critical step would mean, he determined to supplant the ordinary guards. It was arranged that John Cumberland and Barry should take a dog watch two hours at the high and low ends of the valley; then Hassan and Danbazzar; and finally Professor Blackwell and Mahmoud. All would be armed. โ€œItโ€™ll take me right through the first spell,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œand most of the third, to collect up the stuff I want to get along. Maybe Iโ€™ll make more than one journey each time, and Hassan can help.โ€ โ€œDonโ€™t forget the signal!โ€ Professor Blackwell warned. โ€œWe are all tuned up above concert pitch!โ€ And so, beneath a glorious moon that painted the Valleys of the Kings and Queens with silvern mystery, Barry and his father began the first watch. Wholly animated now by the spirit of adventure, they tossed for positions–and Barry got the low end. Shouldering his rifle, he marched down the slope; and, his post reached, gave himself over to reflection. The first idea to claim his mind was a grotesque one. Here were a group of eminently respectable Americans mounting armed guard over a tomb that belonged to the Egyptian government! True, they had evidence pointing to the possibility that it contained a living woman; but to pretend that they were in any sense actuated by the motives of a rescue party would be sheer hypocrisy. The spot, if somewhat inaccessible, was nevertheless open to the public. He experienced momentarily the sensations of one who claims a certain mound in Central Park and posts sentinels over it. Then, swiftly, his thoughts changed. Zalithea! To no living soul had he breathed his conviction that Zalithea–if she really lay under that painted cover–had already appeared to him, perhaps in visions, but apparently in the flesh! He knew that he had not spoken of this because he had not dared. Even now he was afraid to think of the painted figure, afraid to face the question: What does it all mean? He tried to banish these ideas. They definitely disturbed him. And the morrow would show–what? Resting his rifle against a rock, he filled and started a pipe. The flame of the little gold lighter–a parting present from Jim Sakers–made grotesque shadows. He remembered that at this point he was no great distance from the haunted valley where he had seen the mummylike figure moving. The thought was unnerving. He imagined that gaunt, half human shape creeping toward him, secretly, through the darkness. In the little hollow were ruins of those huts which had been built in a remote age for the accommodation of the tomb guards. If the spirit of such a guard could revisit that spot, how bitter–and how just–would be his resentment! He toyed with this idea. And, largely because of an unpleasant tingling of his scalp which he was brave enough to admit to himself betokened approaching panic, he argued that the case presented peculiar and extenuating features. Here was no violation of the mighty dead. On the contrary, they were carrying on the labours of the priests who had begun this amazing experiment. They were attempting to make possible that dream of Pharaoh in which he had seen men of a future age listening to a story of his grandeur from the lips of one who had witnessed it! From this convincing argument he derived much comfort. The supernatural dread which had threatened to claim him receded like a real presence–only to return suddenly, magnified a hundredfold. Coming unmistakably from the direction of the haunted hollow, a sound broke the profound silence of the night–a womanโ€™s voice! Utterly unexpected, wholly incomprehensible, it seemed to make Barryโ€™s heart stand still. No word reached him; merely the silvery tones. From a great distance it came–and ceased abruptly–almost as though the speaker had been silenced. A woman–in that place–at that hour! The idea simply wasnโ€™t admissible. Yet he had heard her voice! His hands closed like a vise upon the rifle. He gripped his pipe between his teeth desperately. Compromise with himself was no longer possible. For this was no trick of his imagination. Beyond shadow of doubt he had heard a thing admitting of no reasonable explanation; and he was definitely, dreadfully scared. Intently he listened, but could hear only a drumming in his ears. The tinkle of a camel bell up on the caravan road would have been as balm to his fevered mind; for it would have offered a possible solution of the mystery. But nothing stirred. He longed to join his father, to tell him of the phenomenon. But he knew that he must not desert his post. Nor could he conscientiously convince himself that there was justification for blowing the whistle he carried–a signal that would summon John Cumberland. And so he stood there, holding grimly onto his slipping courage–while minute after minute passed in profound silence, that great, deep silence of the desert which can almost be heard. Hours seemed to elapse in this way. But, when Barry glanced at the luminous dial of his wrist watch, he learned that he had been on guard for less than half the allotted span. In the act of consulting the watch, his heart gave a great leap. Another sound had broken the stillness. Then he heaved a sigh of relief. It was the signal, higher up the valley. Someone had clapped his hands three times. Immediately, John Cumberlandโ€™s voice came: โ€œWhoโ€™s there?โ€ โ€œDanbazzar,โ€ Barry heard. After this, words became indistinguishable; but a human link had been established; he no longer felt alone with the shadows. And his dread slipped from him like a discarded garment. He wondered, practically, if he should report the occurrence. He decided to wait until he was relieved by the next watch. So the second hour of his duty wore on, uneventfully, and at last came the familiar signal again. Some conversation there was; then an interval of silence. Finally, he heard the voices of John Cumberland and Danbazzar drawing nearer as they walked down the slope. Coming around the last bend: โ€œTwo more loads will do it,โ€ Danbazzar was saying. โ€œIโ€™ll bring them up while Blackwell and Mahmoud are on watch. Then everything will be safely planted by daylight.โ€ As they came into view: โ€œHullo, there!โ€ Danbazzar called. โ€œAll clear?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ said Barry, โ€œexcept that I heard a most extraordinary thing about an hour ago.โ€ โ€œWhat?โ€ Danbazzar demanded sharply. He bent forward, so that even in the darkness of the wรขdi Barry could see the gleam of his fierce eyes. โ€œA womanโ€™s voice!โ€ โ€œEh!โ€ John Cumberland exclaimed. โ€œYou must have been dreaming, Barry!โ€ โ€œI wasnโ€™t dreaming, Dad.โ€ โ€œWhere did it come from?โ€ Danbazzar asked rapidly. โ€œWhich direction?โ€ Barry pointed. โ€œDown there–where we saw the mummy man. โ€œGood heavens!โ€ said his father–โ€œthe haunted valley!โ€ He was acquainted with the story of the apparition seen by Danbazzar and Barry, and had even explored the hollow by daylight, but had found no evidence of human habitation. โ€œStrange,โ€ Danbazzar muttered, in his deep voice. โ€œDid she seem to be speaking English?โ€ โ€œI couldnโ€™t say. No words were distinguishable.โ€ โ€œWas it a young voice?โ€ John Cumberland asked. โ€œYes.โ€ Danbazzar and John Cumberland exchanged swift glances. Then: โ€œIs it possible,โ€ asked the latter, โ€œthat some camping party has crossed?โ€ โ€œNo!โ€ Danbazzar spoke confidently. โ€œIโ€™d have had news of it from Hassan. He knows everything thatโ€™s arranged in Luxor. And thereโ€™s no dahabรฎyeh up either. I canโ€™t account for it.โ€ He stared hard at Barry. โ€œI heard it,โ€ the latter repeated. โ€œI donโ€™t doubt you heard something,โ€ Danbazzar admitted. โ€œBut Iโ€™m just wondering what it was. There are night birds that have a note not unlike a womanโ€™s voice. Some small animals, too, when a jackal gets them, squeal like hares. And the cry of a hare is very human. Did you know that?โ€ โ€œI knew it,โ€ Barry replied, โ€œalthough I never heard one. But this was no animal or bird. It was a woman a long way off, but unmistakably a woman.โ€ The mystery unsolved, they presently parted; Danbazzar taking over the watch, and John Cumberland and Barry returning to camp. They exchanged greetings with Hassan es Sugra, posted at the head of the valley, and then, silent for the most part, tramped on to the tents. Professor Blackwell was very much awake. In fact, he had got Mahmoud to prepare coffee for them. Sandwiches consisting of Huntley and Palmerโ€™s biscuits, native butter, and bottled prawns were also in readiness. โ€œHighly indigestible,โ€ the Professor admitted. โ€œBut one or two extra nightmares count for little upon such an expedition. โ€ The phenomenon of the mysterious voice was discussed at length. โ€œI vote for some kind of nighthawk,โ€ John Cumberland finally declared. โ€œIt was no nighthawk,โ€ Barry assured him. โ€œHโ€™m!โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell. โ€œI am consistently unfortunate at games of chance. But I venture to hope that on my watch I may draw the upper end of the valley and Mahmoud the lower!โ€ How this fell out, and what Danbazzar and Hassan had to report, Barry did not learn. Determined though he had been not to close his eyes until the night was ended, tired nature prevailed. Not even the prawns and coffee could keep him awake. He found himself nodding over his pipe. John Cumberland was deep in slumber in a chair, and Professor Blackwellโ€™s snores rang out sonorously upon the desert silence. Barry aroused himself, and: โ€œItโ€™s no good, Dad!โ€ he said. John Cumberland started into wakefulness. The Professor snored on. โ€œWe must turn in,โ€ Barry continued. โ€œWe are both dead beat!โ€ โ€œYouโ€™re right, my boy,โ€ his father agreed. โ€œBut whoโ€™s going to wake Blackwell when the time comes?โ€ Barry pointed, laughing sleepily. A cheap alarum clock, set for fifteen minutes ahead of the Professorโ€™s watch with Mahmoud, stood only six inches from the sleeperโ€™s head! โ€œThe scientific mind,โ€ murmured John Cumberland–โ€œalways methodical. Good night, Barry. Iโ€™m for bed.โ€ โ€œGood night,โ€ said Barry. Five minutes later he was fast asleep. No dreams visited him to night. He slept the sleep of utter weariness. A gunshot would not have awakened him. And the sun was high above the valleys where those who ruled Egypt in the golden past slept even more soundly than he, when a booming voice ended his slumbers. โ€œTurn out!โ€ Barry opened his eyes. Danbazzar stood looking into the tent. This extraordinary man, from his leonine head with its well brushed gray hair down to his polished riding boots, was spruce as though the dust of deserts positively avoided him. โ€œWe open the sarcophagus in an hour!โ€ Chapter 20. The Ritual. Barry looked around the square, rock hewn chamber communicating with the tomb, and wondered why he felt no inclination to laugh. Had Jim Sakers formed one of the party, his mood might have been different; but, in the company of his father, Danbazzar, and Professor Blackwell, he found himself touched by awe. They wore robes, sandals, and curious linen skullcaps which entirely concealed their hair. Danbazzar, so arrayed, presented an impressive picture. He did not look like an Egyptian priest, but he might have been a Pharaoh disguised as one, except for his moustache. The others, save for their deeply tanned skin, could by no stretch of the imagination have been mistaken for anything but American citizens masquerading. Professor Blackwell, oddly enough, was more convincing than the rest. Without his spectacles, although he could see little, he had a distinctly hieratic appearance. Hassan es Sugra was not present. With Mahmoud he mounted guard in the valley, above. A richly embroidered curtain hung in the now demolished doorway of the tomb chamber. The heat was almost insupportable; and the smell of some kind of incense which was burning on the other side of the curtain added to the oppressiveness of the atmosphere. This was Kyphi, mentioned in the โ€œPapyrus Ebers,โ€ and, according to Danbazzar, only twice hitherto prepared in modern times. Danbazzar gave his final instructions. โ€œTo the best of my knowledge,โ€ he said, โ€œeverything is ready. One essential oil–you know the one I mean, Professor–has changed colour since I had it distilled. I can only hope that its special properties, whatever they are, remain the same.โ€ โ€œIt has no special properties that I am aware of,โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œWe shall see,โ€ the deep voice went on. โ€œThe seven lamps are ready to be lighted. You know when to light them and which lamps each of you must light. The last one, I light. The two unguents are in the bowls. Youโ€–turning his piercing regard upon Barry–โ€œwill put the taper to the liquid in the perfume burner when I give the signal. โ€œThe wine for the final draught, youโ€–indicating John Cumberland–โ€œwill pour into the cup onto the powder at the last moment–when she opens her eyes. I consider the wine to be the most doubtful item. Itโ€™s Madeira wine, over a hundred and fifty years old, but Iโ€™m not sure of it all the same.โ€ โ€œThat contained in the flagon found here was undoubtedly a similar vintage,โ€ Professor Blackwell said. โ€œIt was a grape wine. My microscope has convinced me of this.โ€ โ€œWe can only hope youโ€™re right,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œAnd now–the most important point of all. The sarcophagus Iโ€™ve had lifted out onto a sloping trestle. The implements for raising the lid are ready. The couch, described in the formula, is still serviceable, if we take great care. Directly the lid is off, she must be taken out of the sarcophagus and laid on the couch. Iโ€™ll do it. From that moment on, no one must speak! No one must make a sound! Just do your jobs. And, for Godโ€™s sake, donโ€™t bungle!โ€ He held the curtain aside, and the party filed into the tomb. It presented a picture that time could never efface from the minds of those who saw it. Dimly lighted by an ancient lamp set upon a pedestal, the air was misty with clouds of incense arising from a tripod placed on the right of the doorway. The lotus sarcophagus rested, slanting, near to the great granite box which had contained it for generations. Upon a low table were two bowls containing some kind of ointment; a metal perfume burner; a jewelled cup in which was some gray, powdery substance; a stoppered flagon; and a curiously shaped lamp. The table was set close to the head of a long, narrow, gilded couch, having legs carved to represent those of an animal, and found in the tomb. Six other lamps were placed at intervals around the walls. Danbazzar pointed to a bundle of tapers. They were made of some inflammable resinous substance. โ€œThe moment I lift her out,โ€ he directed, โ€œlight those tapers at the brazier. The wrappings I look to find perished, and I shall set to work right away. Say all you want to say before I get the lid off. I shall work fast, even if I do damage. Once the thing is open–not a word from anybody.โ€ He stooped over the sarcophagus, with its startling presentment of the occupant. His shadow, gigantic, moved upon painted walls and ceiling. A sound of wrenching, cracking wood broke the oppressive silence.โ€ฆ Barry clenched his teeth hard. He glanced at his father. Even through the tan one could see that John Cumberland had grown pale. Professor Blackwellโ€™s gaunt features glistened with perspiration. Barry wondered–as though newly faced with the problem–what he should do if the sarcophagus really proved to contain a woman! A sudden unaccountable conviction had come to him that it was empty. The heat in the tomb seemed to be growing greater every moment.โ€ฆ John Cumberland stepped forward, in response to a signal from Danbazzar. Together, they raised the painted lid and rested it upright against the nearest wall. Through a mist that was not wholly due to the incense, Barry saw the figure of a woman lying in the sarcophagus! The figure was swathed in saffron coloured wrappings. The arms and hands were enwrapped also. But within a sort of aperture where the face should have been appeared a thin gold mask. He experienced a sense of suspended animation. He seemed to watch that rigid figure through a vast period of time. Then, casting an imperious glance around him, and raising a finger significantly to his lips, Danbazzar stooped. Lifting the mummylike form, he placed it on the couch. With a pair of surgical scissors he began to cut through the wrappings.โ€ฆ A hand touched Barryโ€™s arm. He started wildly. Professor Blackwell, his features strangely haggard, handed him a taper and pointed to the tripod. Barry, by dint of a stupendous effort, regained control of himself. He remembered that it was his duty to light the first two lamps. This duty he performed blindly. A sound of tearing linen seemed to fill the chamber. The perfume of the oil in the lamps began to mingle with that of the Kyphi.โ€ฆ John Cumberland lighted two more lamps. Barry turned and looked. Like lilies blooming in corruption, he saw two slender, exquisite arms peeping out from the torn and powdered wrappingsโ€ฆ bare, creamy shoulders gleamed in the lamplight. Danbazzar gently detached the gold mask and removed the turbanlike swathings which confined a mass of short, wavy dark hair. A pale, exquisite face was revealed, delicate as a Greek cameo. Long, curling black lashes rested on the youthfully rounded cheeks. The pouting lips seemed to smile.โ€ฆ In on the hush of it burst a loud, harsh cry: โ€œMy God!โ€ Even as he met a furious glance of Danbazzarโ€™s blazing, wild animal eyes, Barry did not realize that it was he who had cried out. But instantly came recognition of the fact. He clapped his palm over his mouth, literally choking back the words he had been about to utter. John Cumberland had his hand raised in warning–a hand that shook wildly. Professor Blackwell lighted the last pair of lamps. His face looked waxen–ghastly. Danbazzar, icily calm again, proceeded to carry out the singular formula. A wave of embarrassment swept over Barry, making his very scalp tingle. He turned aside. But his heart was leaping–leapingโ€ฆ Danbazzar lighted the seventh lamp–and glared at Barry. Barry plunged a taper into the brazier and applied the little tongue of flame to an oily liquid in the perfume burner. It ignited at once. Danbazzar, bending over the girl blew the aromatic smoke gently over her face. At which moment, Professor Blackwell staggered toward the curtained doorway. John Cumberland, his face masklike, waved to Barry to assist the Professor. Danbazzar never even glanced aside, as Barry threw a supporting arm around the tottering man and helped him to gain the outer chamber. There: โ€œAir!โ€ he whispered. โ€œI must have air.โ€ The task of getting him along the sloping passage was no easy one; for Professor Blackwell was heavily built. Especially it was difficult at the point where the roof had collapsed, since here he must negotiate an opening only about eighteen inches high. But it was done at last. The Professor sank down in that little artificial cave created by the screen, and shakily produced his flask. โ€œGo back,โ€ he said in a low voice–โ€œgo back. You will want to see if—-โ€ โ€œI couldnโ€™t think of it,โ€ Barry returned. โ€œNot until you feel better. Was it the heat down there, Professor?โ€ Professor Blackwell returned his flask to his pocket. Some trace of normal colour was showing again in his cheeks. From a hiding place beneath his priestโ€™s robe he produced his spectacles and set them in place. He made a very grotesque picture. Then: โ€œNot entirely,โ€ he replied. โ€œThat was not without its effect, of course. But I confess that my threatened collapse was not entirely due to it. Your training, Barry, has not followed the same lines as mine. You are not only a younger man, but you are plastic minded. The sight of a person defying the law of gravity without mechanical aid, for instance, would not appall you?โ€ โ€œIt would certainly interest me.โ€ โ€œQuite, quite. Thereโ€™s the difference. It would horrify me! And to day I have witnessed a thing that has knocked the keystone out of the structure upon which my professional life rests. Those scientific principles to which, as a sane man, I have adhered unquestioningly throughout my career have been ruthlessly destroyed. Either modern physiology is fit only for the scrap heap or the claims of so called occultists are worthy of close examination.โ€ โ€œYou think she is really alive?โ€ asked Barry eagerly. โ€œThink!โ€ retorted the Professor. โ€œI know she is! Whether the madhouse treatment now being employed by Danbazzar will terminate her miraculous trance or not I cannot say. But, quite definitely, she is alive! Go back, Barry. I dare not!โ€ Eagerly Barry obeyed. He returned to the scene of the poor Professorโ€™s seizure in a quarter of the time it had taken to come out. Softly raising the curtain he entered the chamber, all but intolerable, now, because of the clouds of incense. He found his father and Danbazzar bending over Zalithea, their expressions tense. The slender curves which it had seemed desecration to uncover were hidden beneath a fine Egyptian shawl, but it revealed the delicate lines of her slim, still body. Barry feasted his eyes on that pale face. Zalithea! Speculation was ended. Doubt was done with. By some unsuspected gift of prevision, of clairvoyance–call it what he might–he had been enabled to see her, though she lay deep in this rocky tomb, long before he had ever set foot on the black soil of Egypt! It was, therefore, predestined. As Hassan would have said, โ€œIt is written.โ€ For this he had been born. Because of this wonder which was to come, he had never found his ideal woman but had dreamed of dark mysterious eyes which one day would beckon to him.โ€ฆ A faint sigh broke the deathly stillness. Princess Zalithea raised her drooping lashes–and looked long and wonderingly into the faces bending over her. Then, without otherwise stirring, she turned her dark, beautiful eyes in Barryโ€™s direction. Danbazzar, that man of steel, gripped John Cumberlandโ€™s shoulder and indicated the stoppered flagon. Cumberland, making a visible effort to steady his hand, poured the old wine into the goblet. Never removing that fixed, childlike look of inquiry from Barry, the girl allowed Danbazzar very gently to lift her up. He held the draught to her lips and spoke a few words in a language entirely unfamiliar to the others. Zalithea glanced swiftly up at him and swallowed the drugged wine. Then once more she looked at Barry, smiled like a tired child, and lay back, closing her eyes. Danbazzar pointed to the doorway. As John Cumberland and Barry tiptoed out, he extinguished the seven lamps, joining them in the outer chamber. โ€œShe is now sleeping normally,โ€ he whispered. โ€œShe should wake in eight or nine hoursโ€™ time–and resume life!โ€ He reeled, clutched at Barry, and: โ€œGet me out,โ€ he said hoarsely. โ€œIโ€™m through.โ€ Chapter 21. The Awakening. Perhaps, in his heart of hearts, no one of the party–excepting Danbazzar–had ever really counted on success. Certainly, in their wildest imaginings, they had not schooled their minds to acceptance of the miracle; had not realized what success would mean. Slowly, and by different mental processes, realization came in turn to John Cumberland and to Barry, as it had come, instantly, insupportably, to the scientific mind of Professor Blackwell. A girl who had lived during the reign of Seti I–a girl barely out of her teens–was living now. She must be, according to ordinary human computation, fully three thousand two hundred years old; but, according to all the laws of modern physiology, she was still no more than nineteen or twenty! To the Professor, the problem presented was one of scientific faith. Acceptance meant destruction of his lifeโ€™s labour, the tearing up of every textbook written on the subject; it assailed the very throne of reason itself. Rejection, with Zalithea living, meant closing his eyes to the truth. For a long time he remained alone in his tent and could not be induced to see her. John Cumberlandโ€™s problem was a legal one. To whom did Zalithea belong? Since she antedated any government of which documentary trace remained, surely not to the authorities at Cairo? The thought that a false step might result in her loss was terrifying. But, if these two found their ideas chaotic, how infinitely more so were those of Barry. At one moment he was raised to a poetic heaven. In the next he found himself plunged in an inferno of such torturing doubts that he longed for the power to run away from himself. Upon the realization of his shadowy ideal, the proof that the unknown might become known, had followed, what? A knowledge that he must either fly from Zalithea or learn to love her–and that she was, to all intents and purposes, a supernatural being! Such were the early reactions of these three to a phenomenon–and a phenomenon in the form of an unusually lovely girl–which struck deep at the roots of human credulity; which forced them to accept the inacceptable, to remain sane though face to face with madness. Danbazzar alone attacked the problem with confidence. A large Bell tent was set up at the lower end of the wรขdi, and furnished, though simply, in Ancient Egyptian fashion. The necessary materials he had brought with him and Hassan es Sugra supervised the work. His optimistic foresight had not stopped here. A messenger who had been dispatched to Luxor at dawn returned before midday with an elderly Arab woman. โ€œShe has been standing by over a week,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œHassan engaged her. Sheโ€™s a trained servant and was seven years in the harem of the last Khedive. Remember!โ€ he warned. โ€œHassan doesnโ€™t know what we found in the sarcophagus! Nobody outside of this party knows. Zalithea is the sick daughter of a friend of mine in El Kasr who has come down for treatment by Professor Blackwell. Thatโ€™s the story, and weโ€™ve got to stick to it. The sarcophagus was empty.โ€ Accordingly Safรฎyeh was installed, with her few belongings, in the new tent. A covered litter was extemporized and Hassan dispatched on a mission to Kurna. Danbazzar, following two hours of profound sleep, had become his capable self again. Three visits he had made to the tomb, and reported that Zalithea slumbered soundly. John Cumberlandโ€™s anxiety was intense. He had urged the immediate removal of the girl from that nearly unbreathable atmosphere but had been overruled. โ€œWeโ€™ll stick to the formula,โ€ said Danbazzar truculently, โ€œwith or without your permission. She has to stay there eight hours. After that we have nothing to go upon.โ€ They carried the litter up to the tomb, setting it close to the screen. Professor Blackwell mounted guard at the top of the valley and Barry at the bottom. They wore their ordinary working kit; but John Cumberland and Danbazzar had arranged to put on the Ancient Egyptian dresses under cover of the screen before awakening the sleeper. That Danbazzar could make himself understood in the long dead language known to Zalithea had been already proved. It was one further item of evidence showing his knowledge of Egyptology to be masterful. โ€œI know very few words,โ€ he admitted, โ€œand until to day I couldnโ€™t tell if my pronunciation was understandable. Others have claimed to know how to speak the language. But no living man for a thousand odd years back has been able to prove it! I shall have to try to talk to her. She is sure to be frightened. I expect sheโ€™ll be as weak as a kitten. And itโ€™s going to be no easy job to carry her up past that broken door.โ€ โ€œLet me help!โ€ said John Cumberland eagerly. Danbazzar shook his head. โ€œJust stand by with the litter,โ€ he directed. โ€œThe fewer strange faces she sees the better. I can manage alone.โ€ But the wonder of Egyptโ€™s sunset was stealing over the Valleys before the litter was borne down the wรขdi to the tent and a slight, muffled figure tenderly carried inside. Barry was wild to see her. Danbazzar would not consent. โ€œSheโ€™s frightened to death,โ€ he said, โ€œpoor little girl. When she saw old Safรฎyeh she just fell into her arms and hid her face against her.โ€ Professor Blackwell looked up. They were seated in the big tent. โ€œI have been endeavouring to do as you requested,โ€ he said. โ€œBut to prescribe any routine or diet for such a patient is quite beyond my powers. I have somewhat recovered from the first shock, however, and I am prepared to give her an examination at any time that may be convenient.โ€ โ€œWhen she has bathed and recovered from the journey,โ€ Danbazzar replied, โ€œI should like you to see her. I think I have made her understand that the High Priest is coming.โ€ โ€œThe High Priest!โ€ exclaimed Professor Blackwell. โ€œWell, you must remember,โ€ said Danbazzar, โ€œthe priests were the doctors in her time. And I figured out that someone must have looked her over on the other occasions.โ€ Professor Blackwell clutched his high brow. โ€œI was about to say something insane,โ€ he murmured. โ€œI was going to ask if she seems to remember her last awakening. It suddenly occurred to me that this took place roughly three thousand years ago!โ€ โ€œYet she does seem to remember it,โ€ Danbazzar declared. โ€œWhat!โ€ cried John Cumberland. โ€œYou have gathered this?โ€ Danbazzar inclined his head in that graceful manner which was his. โ€œIโ€™m not certain,โ€ he confessed. โ€œBut I think so. I realize I only know enough of her language to act as a link. From this we must build up and teach her English as though she were a child. Her difficulties are going to be worse than those of an ordinary foreigner. We shall never be able to find any analogies! The objects, the customs–all are different.โ€ Hassan es Sugra, it appeared, had been prepared for the coming of the mythical sheikโ€™s daughter. He expressed no surprise on his return from Kurna, nor did he inquire what had become of her escort. He had been making certain mysterious arrangements for transporting the tomb furniture to some place of safety. Work was to be resumed on the shaft next morning, with the object of widening it sufficiently to allow of the removal of the sarcophagus, and the unusual wall paintings were to be photographed before the tomb was reclosed. Meanwhile, Professor Blackwell had completed a professional examination of his strange and beautiful patient. He returned to the tent where the other members of the party awaited him, in an indescribably puzzled frame of mind. Removing his skullcap, he lighted a cigar and fortified himself with a peg of whisky from one of the bottles buried in the sand. โ€œAmazing!โ€ he declared; โ€œquite, quite amazing! Her pulse, respiration, and temperature are absolutely normal! Her flesh is firm and healthy. Her hair is vigorous; her teeth are perfect. I could swear that her nails were manicured yesterday!โ€ โ€œThey were last manicured around 1360 B.C.!โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œThere is a small scar under the hair just above the right ear which suggests that the theory–now generally accepted, I believe–that surgery was practised by the ancients is not without foundation. She is in extraordinarily good spirits. I twice caught her laughing at me!โ€ No one seemed very surprised, but: โ€œWhat about diet?โ€ asked John Cumberland. โ€œSurely she should be treated as an invalid?โ€ โ€œFrankly,โ€ the Professor returned, โ€œI see no reason whatever to treat her as an invalid. Apart from the fact that she seems to be rather tired, I can detect no abnormal conditions of any kind. She addressed me several times during the interview, but her remarks were naturally unintelligible. They seemed to afford her considerable amusement, nevertheless. And the old woman from Luxor must have gathered something of their gist. She, also, appeared to be highly entertained.โ€ โ€œSafรฎyeh canโ€™t possibly have understood one word,โ€ said Danbazzar quickly. โ€œArabic is the only language she speaks, except for a smattering of English; and we have told her that Zalithea talks Kabyle.โ€ โ€œWhich,โ€ added John Cumberland, โ€œjudging from her style of beauty, she certainly never did!โ€ โ€œWeโ€™ll know one day!โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œYou donโ€™t think thereโ€™s any danger,โ€ Barry broke in, โ€œof–of—-โ€ He fumbled for words, and: โ€œOf her crumbling to dust, or something of that sort?โ€ the Professor concluded for him. โ€œYour frame of mind, Barry, is gradually beginning to resemble my own! Frankly, I cannot answer your question. According to my personal observation, the young lady is as healthy as she is beautiful. According to my training and beliefs, she ought to have been dead for three thousand odd years!โ€ โ€œWhat amazes me,โ€ Barry declared, โ€œis her cheerfulness! Just think. Everyone she ever knew is long forgotten. She found herself in a tomb, buried alive, this morning. Yet this evening you say she is laughing!โ€ โ€œHer laughter may have been hysterical,โ€ murmured the Professor, pulling up his robe for greater comfort, and revealing the fact that beneath he wore a pair of very soiled gray flannel trousers rolled up some six inches above his sandals. โ€œNo doubt a visit from a High Priest is somewhat awe inspiring.โ€ At the end of further discussion, a dinner menu for Zalithea was decided upon, and Mahmoud given the necessary orders. A new spirit of restlessness had descended upon the party. If they had solved their first great problem, another faced them. Barry, having prepared for the evening meal, climbed the side of the wรขdi to that spot from which on the night of their arrival he had watched the sun setting. It was not so long ago. It seemed an age. He knew that something had happened in the interval which marked the end of one phase of his life, the beginning of another. Now that he had actually seen Zalithea, that vague dread which had sometimes troubled him when he had found himself thinking of the girl on the balcony had gone. Yet, he asked himself to night, did not his recognition of this girl increase rather than solve the mystery? Since it could not possibly have been Zalithea he had seen on that balcony in New Jersey, then in the garden of Mr. Brownโ€™s house, and later on Fifth Avenue, it must have been her living double!–this or, as others had suspected, a delusion. But why should he have suffered this delusion, not once, but many times, immediately prior to the night that the papyrus came into his fatherโ€™s possession? Surely he was justified in believing that only some form of telepathy or clairvoyance could explain itโ€ฆ and that this explanation presupposed a mysterious bond of sympathy between himself and the girl he was destined to meet? The Ancient Egyptians, he understood, believed in reincarnation. Since their wisdom was so great in such matters, as the extended life of Zalithea proved, quite possibly they were right. She had slept, miraculously, living on; but he had died, in the ordinary way, and was now reborn–in the ordinary way! He recalled, was ever recalling, how she had looked at him in the moment of opening her long, dark eyes. Death had effaced physical memory in his own case; only subconscious memory remained. But Zalithea, never having died, remembered! They had met before, in those remote days–and she remembered him! It was an idea that first delighted and then terrified Barry. He had imagined, on that night in his fatherโ€™s library, that the shadow of Ancient Egypt was creeping out to touch him. He had been right! What this inexplicable discovery might mean to John Cumberland, to Danbazzar, to Professor Blackwell, he could only dimly foresee. But what did it mean to him? This he could not foresee at all. And then, as he began mechanically to climb down to the camp, the sound of a distant voice reached his ears. It was a laughing voiceโ€ฆ and he knew that he had heard it before! Chapter 22. A Summons From The Princess. โ€œI have reached a decision,โ€ declared Professor Blackwell, โ€œupon a point that has been worrying me.โ€ Dinner dispatched, they sat around the table in council, pipes and cigars going. Safรฎyeh had reported that her charge had found the soup, the fried chicken, the Chรขteau yโ€™Quem–of which they had only three bottles–and the peaches entirely to her satisfaction. โ€œWhat point?โ€ asked John Cumberland. โ€œDistinctly,โ€ the Professor resumed, โ€œdistinctly she is the property of the Department of Antiquities.โ€ โ€œWhatโ€™s that!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œWhat on earth are you talking about?โ€ โ€œHeโ€™s talking sense,โ€ Danbazzarโ€™s deep voice broke in. โ€œThere are no two ways about it. She is.โ€ โ€œAre you all mad?โ€ said Barry. โ€œYou behave as though the Department of Antiquities were an orphanage!โ€ โ€œOr a harem agency,โ€ prompted the Professor. โ€œYet the fact remains that they and no one else have a legal claim upon her person. We are no more entitled to remove her from the country, alive, than we should have been entitled to do so had we found her in what I may term a normal state. I mean dead. She is as much the property of the Department as the sarcophagus she lay in.โ€ โ€œI must agree with you,โ€ John Cumberland admitted. โ€œOur difficulties are enormous. The more I think about them the bigger they get. For instance–since none of us dare testify that he was present at the discovery, how can we ever give an account of it to the world?โ€ โ€œWe canโ€™t!โ€ said the Professor. โ€œDistinctly and definitely, I for one should not consent under any circumstances to lend my name to a statement on the subject. In the first place, assuming I were safely out of the country before the issue of such a report, criminal proceedings would undoubtedly be taken by the Egyptian government! This applies to all of us!โ€ Some moments of uncomfortable silence followed, then: โ€œThe fact is,โ€ Danbazzar stated, โ€œthe greatest find in Egyptology since the game began has got to blush unseen. I hadnโ€™t thought of it. Iโ€™ll say so honestly. None of us had thought of it. But there it is all the same. The testimony of this bunch would carry a lot of weight in America. I donโ€™t say weโ€™d go unchallenged. But weโ€™d be taken seriously. Weโ€™re not going to get the chance. We started working in the dark. Weโ€™ve got to go on that way.โ€ โ€œI wish, now,โ€ said John Cumberland regretfully, โ€œthat I had curbed my impatience and formally applied for a permit to excavate.โ€ โ€œYouโ€™d never have got it!โ€ Danbazzar assured him. โ€œYou might as well apply for a pass out check to heaven! And once youโ€™d applied and been turned down, to come here as weโ€™ve done would have been to ask for trouble. No, sir, Iโ€™d worked on it from that angle before I put up my proposition.โ€ โ€œThen where do we stand?โ€ cried Barry in bewilderment. โ€œWhat have we gained if our discoveries canโ€™t be published?โ€ Danbazzar regarded him fixedly across the table. โ€œWe have gained knowledge,โ€ he replied, โ€œthat has been lost for thousands of years. With what we know, and what Zalithea can tell us when we teach her English, weโ€™re going to revolutionize archรฆology, physiology, and psychology–to say nothing of chemistry!โ€ โ€œIt appears to me,โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell, โ€œthat this tent contains the nucleus of a sort of New Rosicrucian order. We are bound together by a living secret which none of us dare divulge. Our present access of knowledge is very great. What we shall learn in the future from this phenomenal girl is also sure to be valuable. But of what use any of it is going to be to the world during our lifetime I confess I fail to see.โ€ Evidently nobody was very clear on the point, for not a suggestion was forthcoming; but: โ€œIn one sense,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œour course is unavoidable. We are committed to go on. Until we have got clear and reclosed the tomb, we arenโ€™t safe! Personally, Iโ€™m satisfied. Our very highest hopes have been realized. We have triumphed! Thatโ€™s good enough for me. Let the future take care of itself. My present big worry is the girl.โ€ โ€œExplain what you mean, Dad,โ€ said Barry. โ€œI will,โ€ his father agreed. โ€œIn the first place, as soon as we can make her understand how much the world has changed, we have got to get over to Luxor. Difficulty number one: How do we explain her to the folks in Luxor? Assuming we manage this and arrive in Cairo, how in the name of Mike do we get her a passport that will be accepted in New York?โ€ โ€œPassport?โ€ murmured the Professor. โ€œQuite–quite. The point had not occurred to me. Of course, a certain difficulty is bound to arise in regard to a minor whose legal guardians have been dead for three thousand years.โ€ He scratched his head furiously. โ€œThere are times when I doubt my own sanity,โ€ he declared. Danbazzar flicked a cone of ash from his cigar. In the lamplight a queer green spark moved on the face of the scarab in his ring. โ€œLeave the story to me,โ€ he said. โ€œThe stuff, I can get away. Itโ€™s part of my business. The girl weโ€™ll smuggle out nearly as easily. Weโ€™ve got to lie like bond salesmen, but weโ€™ll get her away.โ€ โ€œFried chicken,โ€ murmured the Professor. โ€œWhatโ€™s that, Blackwell?โ€ John Cumberland asked. โ€œI was reflecting,โ€ the Professor explained, โ€œupon the fact that a princess who doubtless has dined in the palace of the Pharaoh Seti I this evening partook of soup canned in Pittsburgh. I think I shall go to bed.โ€ He was as good as his word, departing almost immediately. Danbazzar set out to learn if the two guards posted in the valley were on the alert, and Barry and his father were left alone. Hassan es Sugra, that unfathomable man, was sleeping in the entrance to the tomb to insure against pilfering. As the sound of Danbazzarโ€™s receding footsteps died away in the wรขdi: โ€œYou havenโ€™t said much, Barry,โ€ John Cumberland remarked, after an interval during which he had been closely watching his son; โ€œbut I think you have quite a lot to say all the same.โ€ Barry started, looking up. Then he began to knock out his pipe on the heel of his shoe. โ€œYou mean, about–Zalithea?โ€ John Cumberland nodded. โ€œWell–I have!โ€ Barry admitted. โ€œShe is the girl I saw twice in New Jersey and twice in New York!โ€ โ€œI knew it!โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œI didnโ€™t speak, when I saw it first. I was waiting. Now that we have actually found her, alive, itโ€™s a different matter. Barry–I think I can explain the whole thing.โ€ โ€œThen go ahead, Dad!โ€ Barry invited. โ€œWe have proof–living proof–that the Ancient Egyptians knew more than we know. If they were wiser in one respect, itโ€™s only reasonable to suppose they were wiser in others. Now, hereโ€™s what I believe: you didnโ€™t see Zalithea in America. You had prevision of her! Danbazzar spoke of what we know, upsetting physiology and psychology. Itโ€™s going to upset religion as well. I believe you had an incarnation in Egypt at the time of Seti I, and I believe Zalithea remembers you!โ€ Barry started up excitedly. โ€œWhy,โ€ he exclaimed, โ€œI had come to just that conclusion only to night! Itโ€™s unavoidable, Dad! Thereโ€™s no other explanation.โ€ They discussed the problem at some length, with the result that they agreed upon the main issue while differing about minor points. โ€œPoor humanityโ€™s unanswerable question–the destiny of the soul–has been answered for us!โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œIโ€™m dazzled, Barry, by the magnificence of all these revelations. We have learned something, or are on the verge of learning it, which has taxed the greatest intellects in history.โ€ When finally John Cumberland turned in, Danbazzar had not come back from his tour of inspection. Barry, feverishly restless, lighted a fresh pipe and strolled out into the wรขdi. The night was very dark. Leaving the door of the tent, he walked into a wall of shadow, until, around a natural buttress, he saw a patch of light upon the sand ahead. It came from the entrance of Zalitheaโ€™s tent. Danbazzar was just coming out. He wore the priestโ€™s robe and linen skullcap. Barry paused: and in the next moment Danbazzar saw him. โ€œI was coming to get you,โ€ he called. โ€œWhy? Is there anything wrong?โ€ Danbazzar joined him. โ€œNo,โ€ he replied. โ€œBut old Safรฎyeh was hanging around to speak to me. She caught me on my way back. Come along and get into a robe.โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry exclaimed. โ€œWhy?โ€ โ€œBecause Princess Zalithea wants to see you!โ€ Barry pulled up dead in his tracks. His heart began thumping. โ€œHow do you know?โ€ he demanded. โ€œI mean, how did she make you understand?โ€ โ€œLargely by signs,โ€ Danbazzar admitted. โ€œMy Egyptian is mighty limited. But Iโ€™m learning.โ€ That old sensation of unreality, phantasy, came to Barry again. Urged by Danbazzar, he attired himself in the strange dress that they had adopted with the idea that it would be more familiar to the awakened girl. Then, not entirely master of himself, he walked back along the wรขdi. At Zalitheaโ€™s tent: โ€œWait outside,โ€ Danbazzar directed. โ€œSafรฎyeh will call you when I have made her understand you are here. Iโ€™ll do my best as interpreter.โ€ He went in, leaving Barry alone in the darkness. Vaguely, a sound of voices came to him where he waited. The deep, subdued tones of Danbazzar made a marked contrast to the silvery note of that other voice! How well he seemed to know it! Barry wondered why he was so nervous. Suddenly the flap was drawn open, and the old Arab woman looked out, beckoning. Barry stooped and went in. He found himself in a sort of tiny antechamber or lobby constructed of hanging tent cloths. An antique lamp hung from above. There were carpets on the sandy floor, but no furniture. Safรฎyeh held one of the tent cloths aside and intimated that he was to enter. He stepped forward. Some hazy impression he had of a silver lamp, of embroidered curtains, of cushions, queer looking inlaid chests, but these were an indistinct background into which the tall robed figure of Danbazzar merged appropriately. He was standing behind a cushioned divan, or native mattress. Upon it, her cheek resting in her upraised hand, lay Princess Zalithea. She was dressed in a manner which perhaps represented a compromise between the ancient and the modern Egyptian style. Her beautiful arms were bare to the shoulders, and she wore no jewellery of any kind. A sort of tightly fitting tunic and some sort of gauzy dress disguised in a measure the delicate shape which Danbazzarโ€™s scissors had so mercilessly revealed in the tomb. Her white ankles were bare, as also were her little feet. It was so that he remembered her. Long, dark, heavily fringed eyes were raised to Barry as he entered. They were the deeply mysterious eyes that had watched him since memory began–the beckoning eyes of the women who lived upon the frescoes surrounding his fatherโ€™s walls–the eyes that had smiled down upon him from a New Jersey balcony! How beautiful she was! But how pale and fragile. He found himself unable to believe Safรฎyehโ€™s report that she had enjoyed the meal so carefully prepared for her. Those full red lips, though, spoke of health. He was hopelessly, speechlessly embarrassed, under the grave scrutiny of unreadable eyes. But how beautiful she was! โ€œSpeak to her,โ€ Danbazzar prompted. Barry bowed awkwardly. โ€œPrincess Zalithea,โ€ he said, โ€œI am deeply honoured.โ€ She watched him, unmoved, for several moments more. Then, a slow, delightful smile revealed her little gleaming teeth. She turned her head slightly, looking up at Danbazzar. She spoke in soft, queerly modulated syllables. One word which might have been โ€œZalithea,โ€ but accented very differently from Barryโ€™s rendering, gave him a clue to her question. Danbazzar replied, slowly, haltingly; then: โ€œI think,โ€ he said, โ€œshe is curious about how you learned her name. She seems to have recognized it. I told her that you were a very learned priest. She wants to know what you are called. Tell her.โ€ Zalithea turned her disturbing glance upon him again, as: โ€œI am called Barry Cumberland,โ€ he responded. Zalithea considered the words, then: โ€œBahree?โ€ she said–and nodded interrogatively. โ€œYes–Barry; Barry Cumberland.โ€ She smiled, shaking her head in bewilderment. She looked up at Danbazzar and addressed him again. He listened, interpolating hesitant questions, while Barry watched, fascinated. Presently: โ€œShe understands that you are called Barry,โ€ he explained. โ€œCumberland is too much for her. Now, she is going to tell you how to pronounce her name properly. โ€ Zalithea turned to Barry, and, laying one slender hand on her breast: โ€œZalโ€™ith eeah,โ€ she said distinctly, and beckoned to him to approach closer. He did so, almost trembling: the mad wonder of it all had seized upon him anew. Zalithea, in a sweetly imperious way, intimated that he should kneel. He obeyed, and she laid her hand on his breast. His heart was thumping wildly. She looked fixedly into his eyes. โ€œBahree,โ€ she said, and smiled. Chapter 23. An English Lesson. The sound of a distant shot came–from the direction of the Nile. Professor Blackwell looked up with a start. He was inclined to nervousness in these days. Breakfast was temporarily suspended. โ€œMr. Tawwab has called for the rent!โ€ said Danbazzar grimly. He raised his great voice, looking over his shoulder. โ€œMahmoud!โ€ he boomed. The grinning face of Mahmoud appeared in the opening of the tent. Danbazzar spoke rapidly in Arabic. Mahmoud saluted and departed. โ€œIโ€™ve told him,โ€ Danbazzar explained, โ€œto warn Safรฎyeh that they must keep under cover and then to go up and tell the guards, in case they missed the signal.โ€ It was now Zalitheaโ€™s custom to take exercise, veiled like a Moslem woman, early each morning and again in the evening. In a manner reminiscent of that adopted by request during the historic ride of Lady Godiva, not a soul was visible about the camp on these occasions. Hassan es Sugra, at a respectful distance, acted as escort. And he had his instructions touching prohibited areas. After a time, Zalithea had seemed to recognize where she was. At the first coming of this recognition–realizing that she was in the Valley of the Dead–she had been seized with terror. Danbazzarโ€™s linguistic resources had been taxed to the utmost to pacify her. Ultimately he succeeded in making her understand that she had slept, magically, for a very long time; that Thebes which she knew apparently as Amen had altered beyond recognition; and that they wanted her to become accustomed to strange changes before taking her there. Once having conquered her first natural terror, the girl accepted her situation with astonishing philosophy. A reaction came. Perhaps she had grasped the fact that a new lease of life had been granted to her–and that life was sweet. At any rate, she developed a strain of childish mischief at once delightful and disturbing. For Danbazzarโ€™s orders she had little respect, apparently; but that diplomat was quick to learn that for Barry she would do anything. โ€œI trust,โ€ said the Professor, nervously glancing at his watch, โ€œthat the young lady from Unu will subdue her high spirits while Mr. Tawwab is in camp.โ€ โ€œIโ€™m going to send Barry along to keep her quiet,โ€ replied Danbazzar. Whereupon Barry felt a hot flush rising to his cheeks and hastily stooped to load a pipe. โ€œA duty by no means irksome,โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œI confess that a woman of more than sixty is no longer attractive in the amorous sense. I had never imagined that one over three thousand could be. But I was mistaken. Indeed, all my life has been lived in error.โ€ โ€œIn another three days,โ€ said Danbazzar, flashing a triumphant glance around the table, โ€œweโ€™ll be through! All the stuff is where Mr. Tawwab will never see it. The photographs are finished. My drawings I can complete when I like. Itโ€™s just a matter of building up the opening, now, and striking the screen.โ€ โ€œMy notes are fairly up to date, also,โ€ John Cumberland added. โ€œI have material for a book that publishers would fight to get.โ€ โ€œQuite, quite,โ€ remarked the Professor. โ€œBut except as a work of fiction you cannot publish it.โ€ โ€œI shall write it, nevertheless,โ€ the other assured him. โ€œIt will be in three volumes. The first volume will deal, exhaustively, with the history of the papyrus and the formula. It will bring the account up to the time of our arrival here. The second volume will be compiled from notes made on the spot. It will deal with the excavation and end with the discovery of Zalithea. The third volume will contain the story of her life during the reign of Seti.โ€ โ€œAdmirable,โ€ the Professor agreed. โ€œI shall be obligated, however, if you will refer to me in your magnum opus as Doctor X.โ€ And now, a slender, mysterious, black robed figure, Hassan es Sugra bowed in the tent opening. โ€œYour pardon, sirs,โ€ he said in his gentle way, โ€œbut Mr. Tawwab comes. He will shortly be here.โ€ โ€œI vote we all see him!โ€ cried Barry. โ€œWhy should we study his feelings? Heโ€™s just a common grafter.โ€ โ€œIn studying the sensibilities of Mr. Tawwab,โ€ remarked Professor Blackwell, โ€œone would be studying the non existent; a paradox. But our own position is not too secure.โ€ โ€œWe donโ€™t have to jolt him,โ€ Danbazzar agreed. โ€œWeโ€™re not out of the wood. But Mr. Cumberland and I can talk business. Itโ€™s just as well that he should show his hand with a witness here. I guess, Professor, youโ€™d rather not stay. And Iโ€™m taking Barry along to the Princess.โ€ โ€œWhy?โ€ Barry demanded, laughing to hide his embarrassment. โ€œBecause you may be able to keep her in order. Nobody else can.โ€ โ€œBut I canโ€™t talk to her!โ€ โ€œYouโ€™ve got to learn. Give her some elementary lessons in English.โ€ The masterful Danbazzar had his way; and Barry found himself, a few minutes later, in the little lobby of Zalitheaโ€™s tent. Danbazzar went in to announce him, and almost immediately Safรฎyeh appeared, holding the tent cloth aside and intimating that he should enter. He found this wonder girl who was so distractingly human, this charming survival of a mystic past, stretched on the cushioned mattress, her head buried in her creamy arms rebelliously. Danbazzar stood looking down at her in an unfamiliar attitude of defeat. โ€œSheโ€™s a bit up stage this morning,โ€ he announced. โ€œItโ€™s so darned hard to remember that sheโ€™s a princess and probably used to a lot of ceremony. I thought I had her set about the robes. I tried to tell her that we only wore them on religious occasions, and that other times we dressed as weโ€™re dressed now. I had to tell her something, because she caught me on Monday, you remember, coming back from the tomb?โ€ โ€œI do remember,โ€ said Barry. โ€œBut when I saw her, later, she seemed to be used to our queer costumes.โ€ Danbazzar looked down at his white breeches and speckless tan riding boots. โ€œIt isnโ€™t that,โ€ he explained. โ€œSheโ€™s got the idea that the robes are ceremonious and that weโ€™re slighting her by not wearing them when we come to see her.โ€ Zalithea half raised her oval face, so that one dark eye peeped out over the rampart of her arm. A quick, disdainful glance she flashed over Barry, from his bare head to his dusty shoes; and hid her face again. โ€œThatโ€™s that,โ€ sighed Danbazzar. โ€œThereโ€™s no time to go back. But wait outside and Iโ€™ll have your robes brought down by Hassan.โ€ They turned to go, when: โ€œDan bazz ah!โ€ said a clear, imperious voice. Barry and Danbazzar turned, together. Princess Zalithea was sitting upright, her arms outstretched, her hands resting upon the cushions on either side of her. From her pale, beautiful features all expression had been effaced. They were like an exquisite ivory mask into which a magician has blown the breath of life. She spoke a sentence rapidly, her long, half closed eyes turned sideways upon Danbazzar. He bowed in his graceful manner and replied very hesitantly. No expression stirred the girlโ€™s lovely face. โ€œI was right,โ€ he explained. โ€œShe considers that weโ€™ve insulted her! I took all the blame and told her you had just come back from a journey and asked to see her right away.โ€ Barry frowned, and: โ€œIs it necessary to tell her so many lies?โ€ he asked. โ€œYou bet it is!โ€ Danbazzar assured him. โ€œLook at her!โ€ Barry glanced, guiltily, toward the divan. He started. Zalithea was watching them with a stare of such murderous anger that his heart seemed to turn cold! He would never have conceived it possible that her youthful features could assume a look of such utter malignancy. Watching her, fascinated against his will, he experienced again that awful tingling of the spine which he had known during his vigil in the valley on the night he had heard the strange voice. Definitely, he knew in this moment that it had been her voiceโ€ฆ although she had lain buried deep in the heart of the rock! Yes, this girl woman, this child witch who had first seen the light in an island unknown to modern geography, was uncanny! Danbazzarโ€™s deep tones broke in upon the silence; he addressed Zalithea in the musical, oddly monotonous language which Barry was beginning to recognize as that which the Pharaohs spoke. Then: โ€œCome on!โ€ he said abruptly. โ€œI can hear Tawwab.โ€ He raised the tent cloth. Barry was about to follow him out, when: โ€œBahree!โ€ came softly. He turned. Danbazzar had gone, dropping the curtain. He was alone with Zalithea! Half fearfully, he looked at her. โ€ฆ She was resting on her elbow, watching him, and her sweet lips were arched in a smile which revealed little gleaming teeth! Her eyes, widely opened now, were deep pools of contrition; her delicate nostrils quivered. She was on the verge of tears! Barry experienced a dramatic revulsion of feeling. In his hard, modern, Western self sufficiency, he had wounded the tender susceptibilities of this sheltered flower of the East. What did he, or Danbazzar, for that matter, know of courts and palaces? Much less they knew of the splendid ceremony of those old, dead days when Seti, from Thebes of the Hundred Gates, ruled a mighty empire! He hated himself and hated Danbazzar. They had a princess among them, and they treated her like a chambermaid! They discussed her as though she were a marketable relic, to be bought and sold–this living, lovely revelation of the wonder that was Egypt! Some remote ancestor who had known the meaning of homage came to life in Barry; seized him by the scruff of the neck and forced him onto his knees. Very near to Zalithea he knelt, his head bowed, waiting for pardon. Instantly it was granted. A little hesitant hand touched his hair; and he looked up. The girlโ€™s long, curling lashes, the most perfect he had ever seen, were wet with tears. โ€œForgive me!โ€ he burst out, forgetting that she could not understand. โ€œI–he–neither of us–meant to hurt you!โ€ She smiled through her tears and touched his hair again. โ€œBahree,โ€ she said, and made a quaint gesture which conveyed dismissal of the subject. And then, very close together, in silence, these two remained for long moments, watching one another; the girl reclining on her cushions and the man kneeling beside her. In that odd hush, the suave tones of Mr. Tawwab were clearly audible as he entered the upper end of the wรขdi in conversation with Danbazzar. A subdued booming was all that could be distinguished of the latterโ€™s responses. Both voices presently ceased. The party had met in the tent above. Barry suddenly grew self conscious. He was kneeling beside Zalithea and studying her raptly. It had occurred to him that this was the height of rudeness. True, she had suffered his scrutiny without complaint, but this did not excuse his bad form. In a nervous endeavour to break the tension, and recalling Danbazzarโ€™s instructions, he touched a symbol embroidered upon one of the tent cloths draped beside the divan. It was the crux ansata, symbol of life; and: โ€œThis,โ€ he said, โ€œmeans Life.โ€ Zalithea looked at it, then turned to him. She seemed to be trying hard to grasp what he had in mind; and finally: โ€œAnkh,โ€ she said. โ€œYou call it ankh?โ€ he asked eagerly; for he knew this to be the Ancient Egyptian term for the figure. Zalithea, listening and watching, smiled. โ€œAnkh,โ€ she repeated. โ€œLife,โ€ said Barry. โ€œLie ef,โ€ Zalithea whispered doubtfully. โ€œLife!โ€ She shook her head. And Barry realized how, tempted by the fact that he chanced to know its Egyptian name, he had chosen an object impossible to explain in pantomime. Zalithea, laughing now, stretched out a finger and laid it gently upon his eyelid. โ€œEye,โ€ he said eagerly. โ€œEye,โ€ she repeated. She touched his ear. โ€œEar.โ€ โ€œEe ah!โ€ So the first lesson began–a lesson in a science that was old even in Setiโ€™s days. Master and pupil forgot the passing of the hours in that enthralling study. Old Safรฎyeh, squatting patiently on her mat beyond the curtain, nodded as the sun climbed a blue highway toward the dome of noon. Innumerable cups of coffee had been drunk by Danbazzar, John Cumberland, and Mr. Tawwab, and entire boxes of cigarettes consumed. But still Barry said, touching Zalithea: โ€œArm!โ€ And Zalithea, watching him, replied: โ€œAah em!โ€ When, at last, a substantial check having changed hands, Mr. Tawwab rose to take his departure, he showed a marked preference for a route through the lower end of the wรขdi. Mr. Tawwab was an observant man. Suddenly, raised voices disturbed the English lesson. Zalithea sat very upright, listening. โ€œIf you donโ€™t mind, yes!โ€ Mr. Tawwab was saying. โ€œYour camp is so interesting. I should love to see your kitchen.โ€ Placing a finger on her lips, Zalithea stood up. In her simple native dress Barry thought she was the sweetest thing he had ever looked upon. โ€œZalithea,โ€ he murmured, โ€œyou are adorable!โ€ She paused, glancing down at him. โ€œZalโ€™ith eeah!โ€ she corrected; then: โ€œYou ah addorahble!โ€ she added. Before he realized what she intended to do, she had glided to the tent cloth, raised it, and gone out. He jumped up and followed her. He had recalled, tardily, the real purpose of the interview. His duty was to see that Zalithea did not make her presence known to Mr. Tawwab! In the tiny lobby, old Safรฎyeh had scrambled hastily to her feet. Beside her mat was a bowl in which were some peaches which Zalithea had evidently rejected as overripe. Some of them, presumably, Safรฎyeh had consumed. The less desirable remained. Mr. Tawwabโ€™s voice came from immediately outside. He had paused on his way down the wรขdi. โ€œSurely a new tent?โ€ he inquired smoothly. โ€œSure!โ€ boomed Danbazzar. โ€œAn English Bell tent, sir!โ€ โ€œYou have guests?โ€ โ€œNo, sir! Weโ€™re hoping for guests–distinguished guests–and weโ€™re all ready. If ever you feel like spending a night with the boys, say the word!โ€ โ€œI am deeply indebted,โ€ Mr. Tawwab assured him. โ€œIt would be delightful. But my duties do not allow. โ€œThatโ€™s a pity,โ€ said Danbazzar. They moved on, slowly–and Zalithea, ignoring Barryโ€™s restraining hand, pulled the flap aside and peered out. Over her shoulder, he could see Danbazzar, a great, towering figure, moving down the wรขdi beside the slight, red capped form of Mr. Tawwab. Then, in a moment, it had happened. Displaying a deadly aim, Zalithea hurled an imperfect peach at the retreating Mr. Tawwab! It struck him on the back of the head, squashed liberally, and dislodged his tarbรปsh! With a cry of mingled fear and anger, he turned. Barry dropped the flap and sank back, aghast.โ€ฆ Zalithea, both hands held over her mouth, fled beyond the tent cloth. Safรฎyeh, horror stricken, followed. โ€œHellโ€™s bells!โ€ roared Danbazzar. โ€œMr. Tawwab, I canโ€™t say what I think! Itโ€™s that half wit Said! Wait here, sir! Take my handkerchief! By God! Iโ€™ll—-โ€ He ran back and burst into the tent in an apparent fury. Barry faced him. โ€œZalithea?โ€ Danbazzar whispered. Barry nodded. โ€œHowl like fury!โ€ Danbazzar directed–โ€œnot in English!โ€ Thereupon he broke into a flood of Arabic, and clapped his hands, simulating smacks. Barry yelled obediently. โ€œYou son of a mange!โ€ Danbazzar concluded–and went out. โ€œHeโ€™s crazy, Mr. Tawwab,โ€ he called. โ€œDonโ€™t blame me. Blame the people that hired him to me.โ€ฆโ€ Chapter 24. The Return To Luxor. Work in the valley was ended. The tomb, stripped of its contents, had been reclosed so that even Mr. Howard Carter could not have found it. The workmen, well paid and happy, had dispersed to their homes. Most of them were men of the Fayyum. Danbazzar and Hassan es Sugra had contrived the transport of Zalithea from the camp in the wรขdi to a carefully chosen suite at a Luxor hotel without provoking comment. John Cumberlandโ€™s bank account had silenced any criticisms regarding the nature of his interest in the heavily veiled Moslem lady for whose accommodation he had arranged. The thing had run on oiled wheels, dollars being the lubricant; but since there is more grit in the world than there are dollars, this smooth running inevitably couldnโ€™t last. Barry, whose dream woman had miraculously come to life, found himself in a frame of mind which he was sane enough to recognize as unique. The Zalithea he knew, the adorable, winning, childish, petulant, sometimes frightening girl, he was learning to worship. The Zalithea of the papyrus, the princess of unknown origin who had been captured by the troops of Seti in an unimaginable past, he fought to forget. Advance guards of the Thomas Cook army had already established themselves in Luxor. A German party, some days earlier, and on the eve of striking camp, had penetrated to the wรขdi. Their insatiable Teutonic curiosity was their only guide; Danbazzarโ€™s lurid profanity their only reward. Even the donkey boys had blushed. But the incident had gone to prove that they had achieved their purpose only just in time. It was the tourist invasion which had checked Danbazzar a year before. That remarkable man, whose resourcefulness knew no bounds, had long since set out, accompanied by Hassan es Sugra, two camel drivers and a large sum of ready money, for the Great Oasis. Here he had arranged to meet a certain sheik of the Shorbagis from Dakhla and to obtain from him a document, suitably witnessed, authorizing John Cumberland to escort the sheikโ€™s daughter, Zalithea, to America for neuropathic treatment prescribed by Professor Blackwell. โ€œThe Senussi,โ€ Danbazzar had admitted, โ€œare the most dangerous fanatics in Africa. One of that bunch would be about as likely to send his daughter to America as to burn his whiskers for firewood. But nobody here will be any wiser, never having been to those parts, and the American consul, who is a Greek from Alexandria, doesnโ€™t know an Arab from an onion. Weโ€™ll get her passport without any trouble.โ€ Zalitheaโ€™s balcony overlooked the Nile. Here she spent many hours every day, watching the varied life of the river front. Her bewilderment Barry found at once pathetic and delicious. The dragomans, who were now beginning to put in an appearance, she mistook for priests. The strangely garbed tourists she assumed to be foreign captives! The advent of the first steamer from Cairo aroused such terror that Barry grew alarmed. He found himself utterly incapable of explaining this mystery, handicapped as he was. Automobiles, for some reason, frightened her but little. Indeed, she managed to make him understand at last that she wished to ride in one! That once vexed question of dress had been settled. Zalithea understood that no slight was intended by the wearing of a lounge suit. She seemed to think that the Winter Palace was the palace of Pharaoh, and she tried to ask if the reigning monarch was absent at war. She was extraordinarily observant. In the cool of the evening, with Safรฎyeh in attendance, and escorted by Barry or John Cumberland, Zalithea would walk along the bank as far as the old shadรปf. The really fashionable crowd was not yet in evidence, but, nevertheless, she quickly noticed–since wealthy Moslem women rarely appear in public–that except among the lower classes veils were nowhere to be seen. This problem was quite beyond Barryโ€™s power of explanation. But John Cumberland, in his practical way, set to work to solve it. From Cairo one day stacks of boxes arrived and were duly carried up to Zalitheaโ€™s apartment. Barry had just bought her a bundle of illustrated magazines and was watching her, fascinatedly, as she pored over pages of photographs showing society groups in various sun traps from Mentone to Miami. What an exquisite profile she had! He wondered, was eternally wondering, where the island of Unu had been. Zalitheaโ€™s long, narrow dark eyes were of a kind he had never seen among the modern Egyptians, but they were typical of the women depicted on the ancient wall paintings. Her profile, too, was purely aristocratic and bore a remarkable resemblance to that of the beautiful queen Ameniritis. His rapt study of the girl was interrupted by the delivery of the boxes. Zalithea ran in from the balcony immediately, filled with childish interest. As box after box was laid on the carpet, her excitement grew intense. Stooping, she touched a label, looked at Barry interrogatively and then indicated herself. โ€œYes,โ€ he said, โ€œfor you! All for you.โ€ โ€œFo ah you?โ€ โ€œNo–you! you are me! I donโ€™t know how to explain!โ€ He rested his hand on her shoulder. โ€œMe,โ€ he said. Zalithea, watching him eagerly, touched her own breast, and: โ€œMe,โ€ she echoed. โ€œYes!โ€ Barry nodded. โ€œFor me.โ€ โ€œFo ah me.โ€ She clapped her hands excitedly and indicated that he should cut the fastenings. Happy because Zalithea was happy, he obeyed.โ€ฆ and out from this box and from that, with a vast rustling of tissue paper, came frocks, stockings, hats, flaky, delicate underwear–priceless loot of Paris. Never had he seen Zalithea so excited. Taking up piece after piece, she literally danced in her joy! Then, crying, โ€œSafรฎyeh! Safรฎyeh!โ€ she gathered up a great armful of assorted garments and ran into her bedroom. She had apparently forgotten Barryโ€™s existence. But he walked out onto the balcony to await her reappearance. Knowing his fatherโ€™s thoroughness, he didnโ€™t doubt that John Cumberland would have found some way to obtain things to fit. Zalithea had been early introduced to shoes; so that this part of her equipment was comparatively simple. As for the other items, perhaps he had enlisted Safรฎyehโ€™s aid. Barry looked out across the Nile to where the Libyan Desert baked under the merciless sun. He could hear Zalitheaโ€™s delicious, childish laughter and the harsher tones of Safรฎyeh. The miracle of it all crashed down suddenly upon his mind like a palpable weight. This gay, light hearted girl, whose laughter rang out clear as a bell, happily as a childโ€™s, had lain for three thousand years over yonder in the Valley of the Dead! He picked up a magazine at random from the little table set upon the balcony. There were things he couldnโ€™t face–yet. He wondered if he ever would be capable of facing them. He dropped into a cane chair and began to scan the pictured pages. In a section devoted to the doings of New York Society, he came across photographs of two or three people he knew. He stared at them as at the pictures of strangers. He felt that a great gulf had opened between himself and the empty life he had known. Upon one side of it were the old set, Aunt Micky, Jim and the rest; upon the other he stood, alone–with Zalithea. Beneath, beside the river, moved men and women to whom Thebes meant sightseeing and sunshine–no more. He watched them as through a haze or as in a glass, darkly. Then, from a minaret at the back of the town, distantly, sweetly, came the voice of the muezzin raised in the adan, or noonday call to prayer: โ€œAlla hu akbar.โ€ฆ La illa ha illa Allah!โ€ฆโ€ โ€œGod is most great. โ€ฆ There is no God but God!โ€ He listened to those words, which he knew, with a fresh wonder. For some reason they soothed his troubled mind. The passive attitude of Islam toward life was very wise, after all. He found himself thinking of Hassan es Sugra, that grave, graceful philosopher, when: โ€œBahree!โ€ came a cry from the room behind him. He turned. His eyes, dazzled by the blazing sunlight, at first could see little in the darkened room. Then, standing just within the doorway communicating with her bedroom, he saw Zalithea. She wore a very up to date dance frock which displayed more of her creamy skin than Barry had seen since that unforgettable hour in the tomb when Danbazzarโ€™s scissors had stripped off the wrappings. With unfailing instinct she had selected shoes to harmonize with the frock, which was very short. Manlike, he thought she looked exquisite–and showed that he thought so. The admiring, grinning face of old Safรฎyeh appeared in the doorway, as Zalithea, almost timidly, came forward into the room. The girlโ€™s wonderful, black fringed eyes were set upon Barry with an expression of childish eagerness. Something very unusual there was in her appearance, not due to her wholly different style of beauty, but to some irregularity in her attire which for a moment he failed to place. Then, all at once, he saw what it was. Zalitheaโ€™s shapely creamy legs were bare! She had forgotten to put stockings on! Watching him anxiously, she spoke. โ€œZalโ€™ith eeah!โ€ she said. โ€œYou ah addorahble!โ€ Chapter 25. Social Amenities. On the eve of Danbazzarโ€™s return, Barry ran into his acquaintance, the irrigation specialist, in the lounge of the hotel. โ€œHullo!โ€ said that chronically bored person, dropping into a neighbouring armchair. โ€œIโ€™ve only just come in from Assouan, but I heard you were back. Howโ€™s the oasis lookinโ€™?โ€ โ€œSplendid,โ€ Barry returned hastily, hoping that the other had forgotten about the dates. โ€œDry Martini?โ€ โ€œThanks,โ€ was the reply. โ€œRumour has it that a charminโ€™ stranger has joined your party.โ€ โ€œOh!โ€ said Barry. โ€œWith which of her many tongues did Rumour whisper this news?โ€ โ€œTawwab,โ€ drawled the tired voice. โ€œNasty bit of work. Know him?โ€ Barry nodded. โ€œI have that misfortune.โ€ He experienced a vague uneasiness. To the best of his knowledge, Mr. Tawwabโ€™s hold upon them was no more. But the manโ€™s insatiable appetite for bakhshish on a grand scale might inspire him to some new piece of interference. He wished Danbazzar were back. Zalithea was dining downstairs to night. It would be the first time she had appeared in public unveiled. Barry had reserved a discreet table, and when he had left Zalithea to dress, she had been wild with excitement. A French chambermaid had been detailed to assist. Inexplicably, the hotel seemed to have become filled up. The lounge was crowded. A number of visitors had arrived during the afternoon. He hoped Mr. Tawwab was not present. โ€œOur guest is the daughter of a friend of Danbazzarโ€™s,โ€ he explained. โ€œProfessor Blackwell is treating her for nerve trouble.โ€ โ€œI see,โ€ murmured the irrigator, sipping his drink and lighting a cigarette. โ€œDanbazzar is the sportsman like a Moorish pirate?โ€ โ€œYes!โ€ said Barry, laughing. โ€œSaw him when you were here before. Extraordinary lookinโ€™ bird. Do you grow ’em like that in America?โ€ โ€œNot in large quantities.โ€ โ€œRara avis, eh? Tawwab was tellinโ€™ me your girl friend only speaks Kabyle. As I donโ€™t know whether Kabyle is a vegetable or an ointment I ainโ€™t any wiser.โ€ โ€œIt would be quite a good thing if Tawwab attended to his own business, donโ€™t you think?โ€ โ€œRather. Itโ€™d choke him–which would be toppinโ€™. John Cumberland and Professor Blackwell came down shortly afterward, and the bored young man went off to join a friend who was dining with him. While they waited for Zalithea, Barry related what he had heard. โ€œMr. Tawwab is a subject who was born to be poisoned,โ€ said the Professor. โ€œI shall feel altogether more at ease when I find myself outside his sphere of influence.โ€ โ€œItโ€™s disturbing,โ€ muttered John Cumberland. โ€œI fear heโ€™s up to fresh mischief. He hadnโ€™t counted on our slipping away so soon and covering our tracks. He probably considers we have bested him.โ€ He broke of, staring. โ€œBy Jove!โ€ he exclaimed. โ€œBarry! Did we dream it all? Look at her!โ€ Zalithea had just come into the lounge, cynosure of many eyes. She was a radiant vision in a zephyr like Paris model. Whom John Cumberland had commissioned to buy it and what he had paid for it only John Cumberland knew. But he was satisfied. Marie, the chambermaid, had done her work well. As they made their way to the table, soft music of an orchestra stole through the hubbub. Barry thought that the lovely girl beside him whose eyes were lighted up happily must have heard other music and witnessed stranger banquets on this very spotโ€ฆ three thousand years ago! That uncomfortable sense of unreality, a sort of veil through which he saw and heard imperfectly, descended upon Barry during the early stages of dinner. The irrigation man and his friend sat quite near and were at no pains to hide their admiration of Zalithea. In fact, it gradually became apparent that the beautiful unknown was being widely discussed. Barry wondered if the story of the sheikโ€™s daughter had spread farther than they supposed. He began to cast off the Old Man of the Sea astride his shoulders–to disregard the inner voice which whispered–whispered: โ€œYes, she looks young and lovely. But you saw her in the tomb. You know she is the oldest woman who has ever lived.โ€ He was fully and finally aroused by a waiter who handed him a folded note. It was from the young man at the near by table, and it read: โ€œWhere can I take lessons in Kabyle?โ€ The smiling impudence of his acquaintance appealed to Barryโ€™s sense of humour. He showed the note to John Cumberland and the Professor. Zalithea, while they read it, touched Barryโ€™s arm, and: โ€œFo ah me?โ€ she said. He laughed outright. โ€œYes!โ€ he nodded. Zalithea held out her hand for the note. Professor Blackwell passed it to her. And she studied it gravely. It was at this moment that a high pitched feminine voice made itself audible above the other voices. โ€œI really must just say how dโ€™you do!โ€ John Cumberland started and looked over his shoulder. A very smart, hard faced woman was making for their table. She seemed to be possessed of volcanic energy, and: โ€œHoly Mike!โ€ said he. โ€œMrs. Uffington!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry muttered, and glanced in the same direction. โ€œGood Lord! All New York will have the story now!โ€ Indeed, it was the famous Mrs. Uffington, most intrepid of lion hunters: according to Jim Sakers, โ€œThe pride of Pierreโ€™s and uncrowned Pope of Park Avenue.โ€ She swooped down upon them. Zalithea, dropping the note, fixed a stare of cold hostility upon the face of the newcomer. โ€œMy dear John Cumberland!โ€ she cried; โ€œand if it isnโ€™t our very own Professor and Barry!โ€ They rose to greet her–without enthusiasm. โ€œI know all about you!โ€ she ran on vivaciously. โ€œJohn Cumberland, I know all about you! What will Micky Colonna say? But, my dear–sheโ€™s lovely! I canโ€™t believe sheโ€™s a coloured girl–canโ€™t believe it!โ€ โ€œPrincess Zalithea is a member of a very old and distinguished family,โ€ said Barry coldly. โ€œAllow me to present you.โ€ He bowed to the girl. โ€œMrs. Dudley Uffington.โ€ Zalithea did not move. Her unwavering stare never left Mrs. Uffingtonโ€™s face. It had an oddly quelling effect. โ€œSheโ€™s rather queer, isnโ€™t she?โ€ asked the lady, in a lower tone. โ€œShe doesnโ€™t speak English,โ€ Professor Blackwell explained. โ€œNo! I was forgetting. But of course I have heard all about it. Do you know who told me? Mr. Ahmed Tawwab–such a charming man, for an Egyptian. He is looking in later, and I must really insist that you and your delightful–protรฉgรฉe–join us for coffee. I shall expect you!โ€ And she was off. โ€œPhew!โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œHereโ€™s a mess!โ€ โ€œSince she finds Tawwab so charming,โ€ murmured the Professor, โ€œI sincerely wish she would marry him–and settle here.โ€ Zalithea, through half closed eyes, watched the retreating figure. โ€œHafee!โ€ she hissed–or that was how it sounded. Barry began to laugh. โ€œI find I am learning Ancient Egyptian!โ€ he said. โ€œYou may be amused to know that, to the best of my knowledge, hafee means โ€˜snakeโ€™!โ€ โ€œReally!โ€ said Professor Blackwell, glancing uneasily at the malignant face of Zalithea. โ€œIt occurs to me that our foster child can be definitely unpleasant. She should prove a revelation to the drawing rooms of New York. Dear me, itโ€™s all very extraordinary.โ€ Any plans they may have had to evade the subsequent meeting were frustrated by the energetic Mrs. Uffington. She had a table waiting, with coffee, liqueurs, and cigarettes, outside, after dinner. She swept them to it. And as they entered the palm screened alcove in which it was situated, Mr. Tawwab rose to greet them, bowing deeply. He was accompanied by a lean, square jawed man having small, fierce eyes, a bristling moustache, and very large prominent teeth. He resembled a mad horse. He was presented as Captain Quick. Zalithea, trailing a light wrap, seated herself disdainfully on the very edge of a tall chair, staring straight into the eyes of the two men in turn as they were introduced, but giving not the slightest sign of acknowledgment. Mr. Tawwab appraised her, critically and ravenously. Captain Quick burst at once into a shouted conversation. โ€œThis is amazing!โ€ he cried. โ€œPositively! Never would have believed you come from the Senussi country! Never! Was down there in โ€™nineteen. Whatโ€™s your part?โ€ Mr. Tawwab exchanged a swift, malicious glance with Mrs. Uffington. John Cumberland looked helplessly at Barry. Zalithea stared at the speaker as though she had not heard him. It was Professor Blackwell, husky in his embarrassment, who explained: โ€œOur friend does not speak English, sir.โ€ โ€œOh, expletive it! What a fool I am!โ€ yelled Captain Quick. โ€œWait a minute! Wait a minute! I know the lingo.โ€ฆโ€ Zalithea stood up, leaving her wrap on the arm of the chair. โ€œBahree!โ€ she said–and pointed to it. Then, without so much as a glance at any of the party, she walked slowly, languidly, out of the alcove. โ€œExcuse me!โ€ Barry mumbled. He had flushed to the roots of his hair. Grabbing the wrap, he ran after the girl. Zalithea, moving with an unfamiliar, swaying movement of the hips which he had always imagined characteristic of the women figured on the ancient wall paintings, was making for the entrance. He came up with her, but she did not pause or glance aside. The night was perfect, and there were groups assembled before the hotel: visitors, residents, vendors of many wares, and guides clamouring to conduct somebody, anybody, to the Great Temple by moonlight. Barry was longing to walk through those mighty halls with Zalithea, but–incredible thought!–they had feared the memories which sight of that stately ruin might arouse in the girl. Karnak she had seen. And Barry could never forget her expression, in which sorrow, stupefaction, and horror had mingled. She had retired to her apartment, refusing to see anybody for a whole day afterward. How he longed to be able to talk to her! If his own brain became so tumultuous when he thought of the history of this lovely, wayward, yielding, imperious girl, what deathly terrors must she know when realization of the truth was borne home to her? Side by side they walked on through the scented night. He placed the wrap over her shoulders. She was following her favourite route–that to the ancient shadรปf. And so, presently, in silence, they were alone beside the Nile. Zalithea paused, resting against a crumbling wall and staring out over the whispering water. A boatman began to play a reed pipe. He played that age old melody which surely the boatmen of Seti knew. Barry glanced at Zalithea. She was listening–intently. Her lips were slightly parted, her lashes drooped. She looked beautiful. But–perhaps because of the Egyptian night and the music of the reed–she seemed unearthly. A cold hand clutched his heart. Princess Zalithea! He was alone with a ghost! She knew that music! What was she thinking? Whom was she remembering? Did it bring dreams of happiness–of love? Or did it magically cast her spirit back over the ages to the coming of that unnatural sleep? Zalithea sighed, shudderingly. Turning, she put her hand in his. Her hand was warm. The little slender fingers clung tremulously. At their touch, his ghostly imaginings fled. She was real, a girl of flesh and blood; not a phantom, but a living, lovely testimony to the wisdom of a past science. If only he could get used to that idea! In silence, as they had come, they walked back; like two children, hand in hand. And standing in the entrance to the hotel were Mr. Tawwab and Danbazzar. โ€œI am most indebted to His Excellency,โ€ boomed the latterโ€™s great voice, โ€œfor this offer of his service. But the lady has been entrusted to me by her father, and I have just left the American Consul—-โ€ โ€œHโ€™m,โ€ murmured Mr. Tawwab, his sly eyes lighting up as he saw the slender, approaching figure; โ€œyou have seen him to night?โ€ โ€œSure,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œAllโ€™s clear. A few formalities in the morning, thatโ€™s all.โ€ โ€œBut,โ€ Mr. Tawwab interpolated gently, โ€œas the young lady belongs to El Kasr, you tell me, this matter does not concern your consul. El Kasr is in the mudiriya of Minia!โ€ โ€œIโ€™ve seen the Mudรฎr of Minia, sir!โ€ Danbazzar replied. โ€œI arrived in Minia last night. Thatโ€™s where Iโ€™ve come from. Believe me, I know the ropes of your country, Mr. Tawwab, although Iโ€™m greatly obliged to you. Our consul has got to give me a visรฉ for the United States, thatโ€™s all. Iโ€™ve arranged the rest.โ€ โ€œThe Mudรฎr of Minia is very obliging.โ€ โ€œMost obliging man in Egypt, bar none!โ€ boomed Danbazzar. โ€œAlways was an obliging man.โ€ Zalithea passed in to the hotel, Barry following. From a hidden bench a slim, black robed figure arose, bowing low. โ€œLรชltak saโ€™รฎda, effendim,โ€ said a soft voice. Barry started, peering into the shadows; then: โ€œLรชltak saโ€™รฎda, Hassan es Sugra!โ€ he replied. Chapter 26. In New York. A month later, to a day, Barry from the boat deck of the Berengaria pointed out Ambrose Light to Zalithea. She clutched his arm to steady herself in the high wind, nestling, furry, very close to him. As he looked down at her he found himself thinking not of the camp in the wรขdi, nor even of the tomb; not of the ancient wonders of Egypt; nor even of those few delightful days in Paris and the later joy of taking Zalithea around London. He found himself thinking of Hassan es Sugra. Hassan had seen the party off at Luxor, bringing a great bundle of flowers for Zalithea. Where everyone else was hurrying and bustling, Hassan had walked calmly up and down the platform with Barry. His eyes, which were so like the eyes of a gazelle, had been sad. But his words, softly intoned yet laden with some deep significance, had remained with Barry like the haunting memory of a song: โ€œOne day, sir, you will come again to Egypt. Some of your friends, now, will not be your friends then. You will learn to forgive me if I have failed you in anything and come and tell me so. For in the end understanding will be. There is one thing, sir, I have to say to you: they tell me the lady is of El Kasr. It is not so. I cannot say where she is of. But this I know–she is not of Egypt. She is very sad at heart. If, one day, she tells you why, be not angry with her.โ€ Then the train had moved out. Barryโ€™s last impression of Luxor was that of the graceful, black robed figure of Hassan es Sugra, his hand raised to his forehead in a parting salute. โ€œBe not angry with her.โ€ฆโ€ He looked down at the bewitching face half hidden in fur. Sea breezes had whipped a delicious colour into the soft cheeks–down which big tears were falling! โ€œZalithea!โ€ he cried. โ€œMy dear! what is it?โ€ She looked up at him quickly, blinking tears away; then: โ€œSorree,โ€ she whispered. This word, โ€œsorry,โ€ she had acquired in London, but he knew that she employed it in the sense of โ€œsad.โ€ He squeezed her arm reassuringly. He had long since decided that her courage was miraculous–unfaltering. Now, he tried to imagine what supreme dread–what rankling doubt–what sorrow for some long lost one had broken it. It was always so with him. In the most perfect moments of understanding it would come–that inscrutable curtain; the veil of an unimaginable past. Once, and once only, he had tried to ask her what he longed so ardently to know: if she remembered ever having met him before. By some unsuspected law of preordination alone could he hope to explain those visions. Had he not seen her as he was destined later to see her–in the dress of Ancient Egypt? Had he not seen her as she looked during the early days in Luxor–veiled like the women of Islam? He thought he had made her understand. But instead of answering she had turned her back and walked away! Did the question transgress some strange law, known to her but unknown to him? There were times when his brain reeled. And now, with the American coast in sight, she was weeping; she was โ€œsorree.โ€ He wondered hopelessly what her thoughts were at this hour. โ€œShe is very sad at heart,โ€ Hassan had said. How clearly he recalled the words of that extraordinary man.โ€ฆ And then, before Barry realized the passage of time, they were in sight of the familiar skyscrapers. Zalitheaโ€™s mood had changed. The child had come uppermost again. She clapped her hands gleefully, grasping Barryโ€™s arm and pointing to the skyline of New York. โ€œFo ah me?โ€ she asked. Barry nodded, laughing. โ€œI trust,โ€ murmured Professor Blackwell, โ€œshe is not labouring under the delusion that you are the king of this country!โ€ They speedily had evidence of Mrs. Uffingtonโ€™s activity. She was not prepared to lose the credit of discovering a beautiful Oriental princess who had been adopted by an American millionaire! Every ship reporter in the city was primed; camera men were there in flocks. And Zalithea imperiously declined to see any of them! She retired to her cabin, with old Safรฎyeh on guard in the alleyway; and all remonstrances were in vain. For a considerable time she banned Aunt Micky, as well, until Danbazzar made it clear to her that Aunt Micky was John Cumberlandโ€™s sister. She received her, then, very graciously. Aunt Micky was stupefied. โ€œSheโ€™s a beauty, young Cumberland,โ€ she confided to Barry. โ€œBut who the devil is she?โ€ โ€œThe daughter of one of the minor rulers out there, Micky!โ€ โ€œBut sheโ€™s not black! Sheโ€™s whiter than I am!โ€ โ€œIt isnโ€™t my fault,โ€ said Barry humbly. โ€œCleopatra wasnโ€™t black, according to all accounts.โ€ โ€œBut this girl isnโ€™t an Egyptian.โ€ โ€œNeither was Cleopatra!โ€ โ€œYoung Cumberland–you have a secret eye! Itโ€™s the right. Iโ€™ll get the truth out of John!โ€ Out on the deck, Jim Sakers and pretty Jack Lorrimer were consoling each other. When, presently, Barry reappeared: โ€œThis is the blackest hour of my life!โ€ Jim declared plaintively. โ€œI am despised–cast out–rejected. I feel like a falling stock. As though it isnโ€™t bad enough to be told that the coveted bottle of unchanging desert has been forgotten! No man with a heart could have overlooked my quart of eternal sand. Now, with my eyes bulging out of my head and my temperature at a hundred and four in the shade, Iโ€™m told, โ€˜No fairy princess. Pass along, please. Stand clear of the gangway!โ€™โ€ โ€œBe patient, Jim,โ€ said Barry. โ€œShe feels very strange.โ€ โ€œShe feels very strange!โ€ cried Jim. โ€œI feel completely extraordinary! Here are we–poor little sleepy Jack, who didnโ€™t go to bed until three oโ€™clock, and tired eyed Jim who had to get home after seeing her home–here are we, lured from our slumbers at an unearthly hour by false promises!โ€ฆ Sand and sorrow!โ€ When Zalithea finally went ashore she was so heavily veiled that not a glimpse of her features could be obtained. As a result, the most conflicting accounts were published. For a ship reporter whose imagination cannot penetrate a few yards of drapery is not worthy of his hire. โ€œVeiled Princess for Cumberland Collection,โ€ was one good headline. โ€œDaughter of Persian Pasha Says New York Like Paradise,โ€ another declared. โ€œHarem Beauty Brought by Berengaria,โ€ was the line which appealed to Jim. But Barryโ€™s indignation was aroused by โ€œCumberland Cleopatra Here!โ€ A suite of rooms had been prepared, by John Cumberlandโ€™s orders, in the furnishing of which, while a definite Egyptian note had been struck, the total leaned to modernity. For Zalithea he had conceived an affection which, when he tried to analyze it, seemed to be compounded of the paternal, the scientific, and–he could not otherwise define it–the maternal! She was his child in a sense not hitherto comprehended in human relations; and she was the embodiment of that second great passion of his life–Egyptology. Lovingly he had studied her. He had noted her early acceptance of those mechanical things which at first had appalled her; her easy, youthful adaptability to wildly strange environment. A certain shrinking from her–involuntary, superstitious–of which for a time he had been conscious, left him utterly in the sunshine of her warm humanity. Barryโ€™s attitude occasioned him many anxious hours. That the boy should lose his heart to this beautiful mystery was no matter for wonder. He had eyes, ears, imagination. And Zalithea would have inflamed any man of his age not made of wood or stone with whom she was thrown into contact. Furthermore, that the meeting of these two was preordained, John Cumberland found it hard to doubt. He knew that Barry thought so; and he did not blame him. For what other explanation could there be of those strange pre glimpses which he had had of her? He had never doubted his sonโ€™s word. But he had found something phenomenal in the story which had led him to look upon it as the product of an excited imagination. How little he had known, in those days, of the wonderful! How sceptical he had been! From the big armchair in which he was seated in the library, he looked up at a wall painting from Medinet Habu. Quite clearly he recalled that he had been seated here, looking at this very painting, on the night that Danbazzar arrived, on the night that he had first set eyes upon the papyrus! Somehow, the values of his possessions seemed to have changed, subtly, during his absence. That wall painting, for instance, no longer struck him as a priceless treasure, although he had often thought of it as such. The enamelled casket of Nitocris; the exquisite painted wooden figure of the priestess, Thent Kheta; even the great inlaid throne of Osorkon from Bubastis–in some queer fashion they had lost colour in his eyes. Almost as the fact dawned upon him, its explanation came, too. As those ancient priests had foreseen, a living testimony to the grandeur of the Pharaohs would outshine all others! The library door opened, although there had been no knock; and Zalithea stole in. John Cumberland jumped up and placed an armchair for her. Jim and Jack were coming on after a theatre, Danbazzar and Aunt Micky having joined them there. Zalithea was wearing a frock which had been bought for her in Paris. She wore it exquisitely. It was a semi Oriental creation, simple enough; but it set off her dark, lithe beauty to perfection. She rested one slender hand on the chair back for a moment, smiling inscrutably at John Cumberland. Then she crossed to the Bubastite throne and seated herself. โ€œYes?โ€ she asked naรฏvely, her head tilted aside. And John Cumberland knew that it would be quite useless to say No, therefore: โ€œYes, Zalithea,โ€ he agreed, โ€œif youโ€™re comfortable.โ€ She listened in her intent fashion, then: โ€œZalโ€™ith eeah you ah addorahble!โ€ she corrected. John Cumberland sat down. Apparently Zalithea thought that this was the name by which she was known nowadays. He strongly suspected the identity of the tutor who had led her into this error. โ€œBarry!โ€ he muttered, reaching for the cigar box. โ€œBahree I love you,โ€ Zalithea corrected again. โ€œGeeve me er kiss.โ€ โ€œYouโ€™re learning the wrong things too quickly, young lady!โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œDo you know where you are, yet?โ€ โ€œAh addorahble!โ€ โ€œI mean where you live. I tried to teach you yesterday. Your home?โ€ Zalithea wrinkled her smooth forehead. โ€œDarling,โ€ she replied. โ€œI know youโ€™re a darling,โ€ John Cumberland admitted; โ€œbut I think I shall have to take your education in hand myself. Iโ€™m afraid I have been neglecting you.โ€ Zalithea, from the throne of the Bubastite king, smiled regally. A considerable disturbance in the lobby now proclaimed the return of the theatre party. Barry opened the library door, and: โ€œHullo!โ€ he cried. โ€œYouโ€™re in there! Iโ€™ve been hunting all over for you. Hereโ€™s the gang.โ€ Headed by the Countess Colonna, the party entered. Jack Lorrimer was frankly nervous–an unusual condition–but highly curious. She had not yet met the mysterious Cumberland guest. Jim followed in with Danbazzar, an imposing figure distinguished from the rest alike by his great height and by the slight eccentricity of dress which he affected. His Egyptian tan suited his oddly Moorish type. โ€œZalithea,โ€ said John Cumberland, beckoning to Jack, โ€œI want you to know Jack Lorrimer, my niece, andโ€–he drew Jim forward–โ€œMr. Sakers. Princess Zalithea has very little English, so excuse her.โ€ Zalithea, beyond a slight smile, offered no sort of acknowledgment. Barry, covertly watching his friend and his cousin, noted that the girlโ€™s queer aloofness had created its usual effect. He noted something else. Jack Lorrimer was very pretty what Jim termed โ€œA 1 at Cupidโ€™sโ€, and Barry, like many another, had often wondered where the dividing line lay between prettiness and beauty. To night he knew that Zalithea was beautiful. Jimโ€™s reaction to the lovely, cold vision on the throne was good to study. โ€œDelighted!โ€ he said. โ€œBeen counting the hours until—- No, of course, you donโ€™t know what Iโ€™m talking about!โ€ฆ Cooler this evening, I fancy.โ€ฆ Wrong again! Howโ€™s Egypt looking these days?โ€ฆ Let me out, somebody!โ€ฆโ€ Danbazzar stood at his elbow. He spoke to Zalithea in that monotonous language which no one else understood. Under half lowered lids she watched him, and then replied briefly. He turned to Jim. โ€œShe says you talk too much!โ€ he translated. Jim turned fiery red. Barry laughed delightedly, and Professor Blackwell, who had just come in, endeavoured to console poor Jim. โ€œShe is a young lady of very definite ideas,โ€ he said, groping with one large, bony hand for a dress tie which, having become unknotted, had evidently dropped off somewhere. โ€œFor instance, she has a settled belief that Iโ€™m funny!โ€ โ€œPlease, Mr. Danbazzar!โ€ whispered Jack. โ€œAsk her if she likes me!โ€ Danbazzar, whom nothing annoyed more than to be addressed as โ€œmister,โ€ conversed briefly, and unintelligibly, with Zalithea; then: โ€œShe is a little undecided,โ€ he announced. โ€œShe has got hold of the idea that youโ€™re a dancing girl and wants to know when you are going to begin!โ€ Chapter 27. About It And About. Danbazzar, in these days, was constantly at the Cumberland home. Next to Barry, it was evident that Zalithea preferred his society to that of anybody else. John Cumberland she respected, but he, for all his knowledge of the old, mysterious land in which they had found her, groped in vain with the strange tongue which she spoke and which Danbazzar alone understood. Nor was he so successful as his son in establishing a link of understanding. Perhaps because he did not speak the language of love, which is Godโ€™s esperanto. Nevertheless, and largely with Danbazzar as interpreter, he had begun his ambitious work. The first and second sections of the book came within scope of his personal knowledge. He believed that they were, now, comparatively valueless without the third. Therefore, beyond arranging his bulky notes, he had done little in this direction. His interest was with Zalitheaโ€™s story, and this she surrendered only in provoking fragments, imperfectly understood by Danbazzar. For instance, urged on one occasion to describe Pharaohโ€™s court, she became unusually voluble. Danbazzar looked puzzled, thought over what she had said for some time, and then: โ€œIt sounds to me,โ€ he confessed, โ€œuncommonly like back stage at the Metropolitan Opera House!โ€ And a day was to come when those words should recur to Barry Cumberland. Social invitations hailed upon them. No door in New York was closed to Princess Zalithea. But She Who Sleeps was as capricious as she was lovely. Modern ideas of good behaviour she simply didnโ€™t understand. They had learned from painful experience, to consult her, vide Danbazzar, before accepting proffered hospitality. She would inquire closely into the character of the household and the probable guests before consenting to go. More often than not she flatly declined to be present. And they knew that social embarrassment would almost inevitably follow if Zalithea were urged against her will. This knowledge had come as result of a disaster at the apartment of a prominent member of Washingtonโ€™s diplomatic set who was entertaining in New York. Zalithea, reluctantly, had agreed to go. She had looked radiant. She was the sensation of a brilliant gathering. Then, Mrs. Uffington had arrived. As that gushing lady crossed with extended hands: โ€œBahree,โ€ Zalithea had said, in her imperious way. Ignoring Mrs. Uffington, ignoring everybody, she had glided, a slender, stately figure, out of the room–and out of the building! It was a moment which Barry sometimes lived over again, memory of which brought cold perspiration. He had been furiously angry with her, and had been unable to conceal his anger. Unmoved, apparently, as an ivory statue, she had sat beside him in the car, while he had poured out the vials of his wrath. Perhaps she had understood, perhaps she had not. But when he saw her face, as they alighted before the door of his home, he would have given much for power to recall those words. Her beautiful eyes were glassy, like those of a tortured animal. Then, as she turned to run up the steps, he saw the long repressed tears gathering under the dark fringe of her lashes.โ€ฆ She had refused to see him that night and for half of the next day. His father, and Aunt Micky, who had been left behind to face the appalling task of explaining, arrived later–and were denied admittance to Zalitheaโ€™s apartments! Danbazzar was summoned. Barry knew no sleep that night. He paced the big library, a man demented, knowing–if he had ever doubted it–that the happiness of this girl meant more to him than the opinion of every hostess in America; than any friendship; than anything in life. Reconciliation had come. But they had all learned their lessons. Invitations to the Cumberland home were eagerly sought for. It came to be regarded as a sort of mark of distinction to be honestly able to say that Princess Zalithea had consented to know one. What guided her in her selections and rejections, John Cumberland could never make out. Slowly, provokingly slowly, Zalithea was learning English. There was no lack of voluntary male tutors. In fact, by painful degrees, the fact dawned upon Barry that he had to count not only with that intangible dread, his knowledge of the true age of Zalithea, but also with more than one rival. โ€œThereโ€™s something I want to know, young Cumberland,โ€ said Aunt Micky on a certain afternoon when Barry was lounging in her private sanctum. This room was notable chiefly because of the fact that it differed from every other in the house; it contained not a single Egyptian relic. โ€œWhatโ€™s that, Micky?โ€ Aunt Micky puffed reflectively at her cigarette; then: โ€œWhen is Zalithea going home?โ€ she inquired. โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry sat up with a jerk. โ€œDonโ€™t get excited,โ€ she went on. โ€œItโ€™s a perfectly reasonable question. And as I canโ€™t talk to the girl, and your father wonโ€™t talk to me, Iโ€™m asking you. Have we adopted her?โ€ Barry laughed to hide his embarrassment. โ€œI suppose in a way we are responsible for her,โ€ he answered evasively. โ€œWhat does Dad say?โ€ โ€œNothing!โ€ Micky replied promptly. โ€œThat is, nothing sensible. He told me, only yesterday, that her history was so strange I should never be able to believe it.โ€ She took a fresh cigarette from the box. โ€œHeโ€™s very likely right,โ€ she added. โ€œNo, Micky!โ€ Barry protested. โ€œSomething has upset you. What is it?โ€ โ€œIt isnโ€™t one thing; itโ€™s several.โ€ โ€œTell me one of them.โ€ โ€œIn the first place, who is this girl?โ€ โ€œItโ€™s very difficult to explain, Micky.โ€ โ€œHa!โ€ She lighted her fresh cigarette with the stump of the old one. โ€œThatโ€™s what John says–and Blackwell! Youโ€™re all lying–all the expletiveโ€™ lot of you! You canโ€™t tell fairy tales to Micky Colonna! And where, exactly, does the man Danbazzar come in?โ€ Again Barry hesitated. It was hateful to lie to Aunt Micky. Hitherto, by skillful evasion, he had dodged the necessity. He determined to endeavour to do so again. โ€œWell,โ€ he replied, โ€œDanbazzar is the only one of the party who knows her language. He knows–all about her father, too.โ€ Aunt Micky stared at him hard; then: โ€œIโ€™ve been in Egypt, young lad,โ€ she said, โ€œand although I never went so far, I know where the desert Arabs live–and what they look like. This girl isnโ€™t one! Also, when Dr. Davidson called, why did old Blackwell hurry him away without seeing Zalithea?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know, Micky.โ€ โ€œBut I do! Because Dr. Davidson has just come back from a journey through Zalitheaโ€™s home country, among the Senussi Arabs! Teach your grandmother to suck eggs, young Cumberland!โ€ โ€œDoes all this mean you donโ€™t like her?โ€ โ€œIโ€™d like her well enough if I knew who she was. But all I know is that sheโ€™s a little impostor and the whole gang of you are backing her up.โ€ โ€œShe isnโ€™t an impostor,โ€ Barry retorted hotly. โ€œNo! I didnโ€™t mean to be abrupt, but you donโ€™t understand, Micky. Itโ€™s the rest of us who are impostors!โ€ Aunt Micky shaded her unflinching gray eyes with one upraised hand, a mark of disapproval; then: โ€œLiars! all the lot of you!โ€ she commented. โ€œI knew it. But whatโ€™s the object? Is she wanted by the Egyptian police?โ€ Barry laughed. โ€œNot exactly,โ€ he replied. โ€œBut there is a likelihood of complications, all the same. You see, we brought a stack of stuff away. Itโ€™s all at Danbazzarโ€™s place, now.โ€ โ€œWhat has this to do with Zalithea?โ€ โ€œWell, in a way—- Oh, I canโ€™t explain, Micky! Whatโ€™s the use of trying?โ€ โ€œTell me what your father told me yesterday–that I wouldnโ€™t understand–and Iโ€™ll heave this ink well at you!โ€ The interview left Barry in a very unsettled frame of mind. He simply could not foresee the future otherwise than through a storm cloud. As he came down into the lobby, Zalithea was just crossing. She was going out to dinner and a theatre with a party that included Monty Edwards, a moneyed undesirable whom Barry detested. She disliked parties but loved theatres, they had discovered. She was dressed already, and made a sweet picture against a background depicting the wars of Rameses II. Barryโ€™s heart jumped ridiculously; for she was so close to him that by extending a hand he could have touched her. He suppressed an impulse–which seemed quite natural–to take her in his arms and hold her and kiss her. โ€œZalithea,โ€ he said, โ€œyou are adorable.โ€ She paused, looking sideways at Barry. Her smile maddened him. โ€œYou like?โ€ she asked naรฏvely. โ€œYes.โ€ โ€œBahree geeve me er kiss,โ€ she invited. He felt a hot flush rising to his forehead. Truly his sins had found him out! At some time he had murmured those words, and Zalithea, who seemed so slow to learn many things, had seized upon them mysteriously. Perhaps the syllables chanced to resemble those of her own language. โ€œI shall have to, one day!โ€ he said. โ€œI shanโ€™t be able to help myself!โ€ The maddest impulses surged up in his brain. Her eyes were beckoning to him. But she was helpless–their guest–to be guarded and protected. He laughed–quite mirthlessly–turned, and walked across to the library. He never glanced back. Jim Sakers was calling for him later. They were dining at a club and doing nothing in particular; what Jim termed โ€œa night of well earned rest.โ€ Barry was looking forward to the evening with great interest, because he had determined, guardedly, to voice his difficulties to his friend and to get the opinion of this honest, worldly soul. Of Zalithea he purposely saw no more. He heard the others arrive and heard the car drive off. A few minutes later Jim arrived. At a corner table, placed before a high oak settle, they presently found themselves in one of the Bohemian clubs of which Jim was a member. And Barry began by outlining the position that Zalithea occupied in the Cumberland home. โ€œI gather,โ€ said Jim, โ€œthat your former flaming passion for the balcony princess has now been transferred to the Egyptian princess?โ€ โ€œDonโ€™t be silly,โ€ Barry returned irritably. โ€œIโ€™m serious. Canโ€™t you understand that that was a vision of the girl I was going to meet?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ Jim admitted, โ€œI canโ€™t. I have seen Mr. Brownโ€™s house, and I have interviewed Mr. Brownโ€™s housekeeper. Thereโ€™s nothing visionary about either. Why should there be about Mr. Brownโ€™s balcony?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know; but there is. Itโ€™s utterly impossible that I should have seen Zalithea there. Itโ€™s utterly impossible that I should have seen her on Fifth Avenue.โ€ โ€œYou saw her twin sister.โ€ โ€œHer twin sister, if she had had one, would have been dead long ago—-โ€ He broke off. He had said more than he had intended to say. Jim stared curiously. โ€œHow so?โ€ he inquired. โ€œDo they drown one of the twins in those parts? Which one do they keep? Who decides? Answer me that–the local witch doctor?โ€ โ€œForget it!โ€ Barry urged, โ€œand talk sense. You have seen Zalithea–many times, now—-โ€ โ€œUndoubtedly. Sheโ€™s A 1 at Cupidโ€™s–a first class risk–Bachelorโ€™s Bane, Incorporated.โ€ โ€œYou know her rather imperious spirit.โ€ โ€œI do. She has practised hard on me.โ€ โ€œBut Iโ€™m crazy about her, Jim! And Iโ€™m dying to tell her so! But how can I?โ€ โ€œHow can you? Easily. Youโ€™re not dumb.โ€ โ€œShe has scarcely any English.โ€ โ€œPress your hand to your heart and kneel at her feet.โ€ โ€œIt isnโ€™t that. Sheโ€™s our guest. I have no right—-โ€ โ€œCable the sable parent. Say, โ€˜Dear Sir: With reference to your charming daughter—-โ€™โ€ โ€œJim! youโ€™re not helping me! And, anyway, thatโ€™s not all.โ€ Jim realized that his friend was really serious. He listened, without facetious comments, while Barry hesitantly outlined a hypothetical case. He spoke of a famous physician of the East who had discovered a method of prolonging life for several hundreds of years. He could not bring himself to speak of thousands! He asked him if he should expect the offspring of a marriage between such a subject and an ordinary mortal, to be normal. But Jim was merely bewildered. โ€œAre you hinting that Zalitheaโ€™s mother is three hundred years old?โ€ he demanded, incredulously. โ€œIs this the skeleton in the cupboard?โ€ His tone was sufficient for Barry. Jim would never understand. How could he be expected to understand? He was glad he had been no more definite; and he clutched at this straw gratefully. โ€œSo we were led to believe,โ€ he replied. Jimโ€™s stare became that of a man hypnotized; but finally: โ€œDoes your father believe this?โ€ he asked. โ€œAnd old Blackwell, and Danbazzar–do they believe it?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ said Barry. โ€œYou would have believed it if you had been there.โ€ But he knew, now, that he could look for guidance to no man. He and those others who had entered the tomb of She Who Sleeps had entered a world controlled by laws other than those known to the rest of mankind. Chapter 28. A Door Closes. Barry returned home comparatively early. Neither Jimโ€™s airy philosophy nor his more serious sympathy, which was not without a salting of worldly wisdom, had lifted the cloud of despondency that had settled upon him. He felt utterly alone. Never, in the loneliest hours he had known in the desert, had he experienced anything quite like his mood of to night. He had fallen in love with a shadow–a mirage; the shadow had materialized; and now, the substance was less real than the shadow. The whole thing seemed to have gone out of tune. The Zalithea he pictured as he walked along, the Zalithea who went to theatres and parties, was this the sleeping princess they had delivered from an Egyptian tomb? Could it be the same, pale, slender girl from whose lifeless body Danbazzar had torn those age old wrappings? In short, where had delusion begun? Where did delusion end? The tired man smoking a soiled cigar lolled on the corner as Barry approached his home. It occurred to him that it was the same cigar that he had always smoked. It was unreal. Without removing the root, the man touched his hat as Barry went in and took out his key. John Cumberland kept early hours; and, except when entertaining, his household was abed by midnight. Barry did not expect to find anyone up. On the tray in the lobby he discovered two letters. Neither was important, but he switched on the light above the table and glanced at them. As he stood there, dimly he could hear steamer whistles on the river. One of them, a deep throated blare, he thought he recognized as the voice of the Berengaria. Even as his glance ran over the typed page, in spirit he had crossed again to Southampton upon that quest never to be forgotten which had led to Zalithea. Then, thrilling in the stillness of the big house, came a soft cry! Barry dropped the letter and turned, standing stock still, with clenched hands. He stared across at the closed door of the library. It was from there the cry had come. All was silent, however, as he stepped quickly in that direction. But, as he reached the door, in a strangled voice: โ€œBahree!โ€ he heard; then, in a coarse, laughing tone: โ€œDonโ€™t be so silly!โ€ Zalithea was in the library–with Monty Edwards! Barry flung the door open and walked in. Across by the big, carved mantelpiece, with its overpowering decoration from the wall of Medinet Habu, Edwards had the girl in his arms. He was a thickset, coarse grained type, whose boisterous good humour served as a cloak for a rather nasty animalism. At the wrong age for a man of his character he had acquired control of a fortune little less than that of John Cumberland. Zalitheaโ€™s lithe body was bent back like a bow as she strove to avoid his lips. Edwards, holding her fast, stooped lower and lower to the alluring, forbidden red mouth. By what cunning strategy he had contrived to be left alone with her Barry neither knew nor cared. It was the colossal outrage of the thing that struck him dumb. The affront to him, to his father, was gross enough. But the affront to this delicate, guarded treasure of some long forgotten court was beyond computation. To his imaginative mind it appeared that Monty Edwards had disgraced irrevocably the name of American hospitality. So swiftly did he act, in his white hot anger, that Edwards, hastily releasing the girl, allowed her to sink down upon the carpet. He turned in a flash–and Barry stood before him dumb with hate. Edwardsโ€™s high colour fled. He spoke huskily. โ€œHullo, Barry! Donโ€™t get mad. It was only fun.โ€ Barry was murderously pale. For ten–fifteen–twenty beats of the library clock, he stood, quivering; then: โ€œGet out!โ€ he said. โ€œGet out while I can remember youโ€™re in my house.โ€ Monty Edwards bandied no words with the speaker. He knew when a man was seeing red. Head lowered and lips unsteady, he passed Barry and walked out of the library. Zalithea stood up, breathing quickly. But Barry never moved, never stirred a muscle of his tensed up body, until the closing of the front door told him that Monty Edwards had left the house. Then he turned to Zalithea. She was dressed as he had seen her earlier in the evening. She was pale but more utterly desirable than any woman in all the wide world. Her long, dark eyes were fixed upon him in a sort of wonder–questioningly–doubtingly. He unclenched his fists. No word was spoken. But Zalithea stepped forward as if bidden. His arms went around her like steel bands. He uttered a queer, pent up cry. He kissed her lips breathlessly, her hair, her eyes, her smooth, creamy neck. He was in the throes of a veritable madness. His long repressed passion swept him away.โ€ฆ When, at last, he released her, she fell back, raised her hands to her eyes for a moment; then, giving him one long look of indescribable intensity, as though she would imprint his image indelibly upon her mind, she ran out of the room. Standing as she had left him, his back to the lobby, he heard the light patter of her footsteps as she raced upstairs. Somewhere, above, a door closed softly. And to that sound Barry found himself listening with a strained intensity. It seemed in some way to be an answer to a question–to a subconscious question that his mind was incapable of framing. Exhausted by the fiercest emotions he had ever known, he dropped into a big padded rest chair in which, evidently, Monty Edwards had been sitting. A still smouldering cigar lay in the little Oriental tray attached to the chair arm. Mentally, he was depressed. But his heart was singing. His former experiences might have led him to doubt Zalitheaโ€™s sentiments. But he could not forget that she had returned his kisses. For an hour he waited, hoping yet not expecting that she would come back. He lived again through the strange days and nights he had known since that evening when Fate had steered the Rolls into a private road–and he had seen a vision of Zalithea. Imagination led him on. Once more he talked with Danbazzar and the others in the tent in the wรขdi and walked beside Hassan es Sugra through those silent halls of the Great Temple. So walking in spirit, with gods and Pharaohs beckoning secretly from moon touched walls, he fell asleep. The cigar, in the tray at his elbow, smouldered on. In the still air of the library, a bluish pencilling of smoke stole straightly upward. It burned until only a powdery shell remained attached to a leafy stub. But Barry never stirred. The night sounds of New York did not reach him in his dreams. And the detective on duty outside the house wondered why the library lights were still burning when dawnโ€™s gray mystery crept over the city. Through the shades, morning light was competing with the electric lamps when soft footsteps sounded on the thickly carpeted stairs. Barry slept on. The footsteps crept lower and lowerโ€ฆ and Zalithea stood peeping in at the doorway. She turned swiftly at sight of the sleeper, her fingers raised to her lips. Old Safรฎyehโ€™s wrinkled face appeared in the lamplight. Then Zalithea looked again at Barry, his ruffled curly head resting on one shoulder. She watched him longingly, as a woman watches a sleeping child. Once she stole forward, but hesitated and went back.โ€ฆ Very softly she drew the door partly to. The man on duty at the corner saw the two women come out and walk away. He was not surprised. They frequently went for a walk in the early hours of the morning, although he could not recall that they had ever set out quite so early before. As the front door closed, Barry moved. The movement rasped his neck against his collar–and he awoke. Cramped, stale, heavy headed, he stared about him. Swiftly memory reasserted itself. He stood up, stretching his cramped limbs. Then he crossed and switched off the lights. The library clock registered half past five. He went upstairs, pausing outside Zalitheaโ€™s door and listening intently. He could detect no sound. He passed on, mounted to the floor above, and went to bed. His next awakening was a tragic one. John Cumberland burst into his room, with: โ€œBarry! Barry! Zalithea has disappeared!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ Barry sprang out of bed, his eyes wide in sudden fear. John Cumberlandโ€™s face was pale. โ€œShe and Safรฎyeh went out at half past five this morning. They have not returned. Itโ€™s after ten oโ€™clock.โ€ Half past fiveโ€ฆ what memory did this awaken? Of course!โ€ฆ โ€œBut I was in the library at that time!โ€ Barry cried. โ€œThey must have seen me!โ€ โ€œExplain,โ€ said John Cumberland. โ€œWhat were you doing in the library so early?โ€ Barry, very briefly, told the story, mincing no words, concealing nothing. As he spoke, he was dressing in feverish haste. โ€œThe door was closed, I suppose?โ€ his father asked dully. Barry paused in his task. He looked up. โ€œBy heaven,โ€ he said, โ€œshe must have closed it! Edwards left it open, and I fell asleep watching the lobby. But it was half to when I woke up!โ€ โ€œDo you realize, Barry,โ€ his father asked, โ€œthat it was probably the shutting of the front door that awakened you?โ€ โ€œI canโ€™t bear to think of it.โ€ The house was in an uproar. Remembering that Zalithea knew next to nothing of the language, and Safรฎyeh little more, it was impossible to imagine their plight. In one fact, that Zalithea was not alone, Barry found comfort. John Cumberlandโ€™s private secretary was already in touch with the police; and, as Barry came hurrying downstairs, Professor Blackwell arrived. โ€œCumberland!โ€ he cried. โ€œWhatโ€™s this they tell me?โ€ โ€œSheโ€™s gone, Blackwell,โ€ was the reply. โ€œNo news.โ€ The Professor dropped into a lobby chair. โ€œSomehow, I canโ€™t grasp it,โ€ he said pathetically. โ€œIf she had been alone I should have feared an accident, but as Safรฎyeh is with her—-โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s what I think!โ€ Barry interrupted eagerly. โ€œAn accident is out of the question.โ€ โ€œThis being so,โ€ the Professor went on, โ€œwhat are we to conclude? Is Danbazzar here?โ€ โ€œExpected every minute,โ€ John Cumberland replied shortly. โ€œI naturally โ€™phoned there first, as she is used to visiting him.โ€ โ€œShe had not been there?โ€ John Cumberland shook his head. โ€œTell him what happened last night, Barry,โ€ he said, and hurried away. Barry, hoping against hope that something in the occurrences of the night might suggest to the scientific brain of Professor Blackwell a clue to Zalitheaโ€™s motive, gave him an account of the matter. At last: โ€œIt may be some primitive reaction,โ€ the Professor murmured. โ€œThe psychology of Zalithea is of course an unknown quantity.โ€ โ€œYou think she is frightened and so has run away?โ€ โ€œFrankly, I donโ€™t know what to think. โ€œI canโ€™t believe she would voluntarily leave the house,โ€ Barry declared. โ€œJust think. Where could she possibly go to?โ€ Professor Blackwell shook his head. โ€œThat is a question I cannot pretend to answer.โ€ At this moment Danbazzar arrived. As the door was opened he came into the lobby, a big, dominating figure. But his stock was not quite so perfectly knotted as usual, and his strange eyes held a very wild light. โ€œStill no news?โ€ he asked. The blank faces about him were sufficient answer. โ€œHave her apartments been searched to make sure thereโ€™s nothing there?โ€ Aunt Micky, very stern faced, came downstairs. โ€œI have searched thoroughly,โ€ she answered. โ€œBut it might be as well if you looked, also.โ€ Danbazzar bowed and walked upstairs. Barry followed. In the suite of apartments which had been furnished for the use of Zalithea, a very faint perfume lingered. It caught Barry by the throat. It spoke to him intimately. It was as though he had buried his face in her fragrant hair; as though she were in his arms again. The rooms were strangely appointed. They were scantily furnished in the Eastern manner, with little inlaid tables and cabinets, and many richly cushioned divans. Perforated silver lamps concealed the electric lights, and the windows were screened with mushrabiyeh work. The bedroom struck a more Western note, being equipped with a wonderful dressing table possessing wing mirrors and laden with every imaginable luxury of Paris. There was no evidence of disorder or of hasty departure. The bleak chamber adjoining in which the old Arab woman spent a great part of her days afforded no better evidence. Danbazzar crossed to a window and threw back the near by mushrabiyeh screen. For a long time he stood there, looking out. Chapter 29. The Hieroglyphic Letter. A period of anxiety now commenced to which it seemed impossible to imagine any end other than the return of Zalithea. The idea that he should never see her again was one that Barry simply could not contemplate. The mystery of her disappearance baffled all conjecture. Short of the theory of drowning both in the case of Zalithea and of Safรฎyeh, no feasible explanation presented itself. At John Cumberlandโ€™s urgently expressed wish publicity was for long avoided. But neither police headquarters nor the private experts employed on the case could offer any hypothesis covering the facts. Since Zalithea spoke no English and her companion very little, it was difficult to imagine how they could have gone far without attracting attention. Further, it appeared that neither had any money, beyond, possibly, some small change. To Barry, every waking hour seemed like a week. He had fits of anger during which he bitterly reproached the girl for the pain which she was inflicting. Then, his mood changing, he would mourn her as dead. Every time the โ€™phone bell rang his heart leaped wildly. Hope and fear alternately gripped him, threatening to drive him mad. Secrecy at last became impossible, if not unwise. โ€œThereโ€™s only one theory that covers all the facts,โ€ said the detective in charge of the inquiry. โ€œThey must be in hiding; either because they want to hide for some reason, or because they are being detained.โ€ โ€œDetained!โ€ cried John Cumberland. โ€œBy whom? For what purpose?โ€ โ€œWell,โ€ was the reply, โ€œsuch things have happened before, you know. It may develop into a demand for ransom. But my point is this: apart from the fact that the ladyโ€™s disappearance is beginning to be talked about, we are neglecting a very valuable weapon, in a case of this kind, by avoiding publicity.โ€ โ€œI agree with you,โ€ Barry said. โ€œIf these two are hiding somewhere,โ€ the detective went on, โ€œoffer of a big reward will tempt someone to give them away. If theyโ€™ve been kidnapped, offer of a reward is what the kidnappers are waiting for. I know itโ€™s going to make things mighty unpleasant for you, and youโ€™re in no sort of humour to be badgered by newspaper reporters. But itโ€™s all thatโ€™s left. The catโ€™s out of the bag, anyway. Hundreds of people know. You might as well tell the world.โ€ Reluctantly, sick at heart, John Cumberland consented. The notoriety which he knew must follow was appalling to his sensitive nature. But anything that might lead to the recovery of Zalithea he was prepared to face. And so, on the following morning, New York revelled in full details of perhaps the most romantic mystery that had ever spread itself over the cityโ€™s front pages. Photographs of Zalithea there were none available. Those taken on the day of her arrival, showing her muffled in veils, were at a premium. Danbazzar supplied a brief and strictly untruthful biography of โ€œThe Lady Zalithea el Aziza ed Dhahir daughter of the Sheik Mohammed Abd el Ghuri, of the direct line of the last of the Khalifs and a descendant of the Prophet entitled by Moslem law and usage to the designation, Princess Zalithea.โ€ As this corresponded with the particulars entered in her passport, no doubts of its accuracy were entertained. A description of Safรฎyeh was also given. She was cited as a native of Cairo. โ€œThis is going to reach Egypt,โ€ said Danbazzar gloomily. โ€œAnd if I know anything about Tawwab, itโ€™s going to reach the Sheik Mohammed. If itโ€™s made worth his while, heโ€™s sure to say he never had a daughter. What happens next we have to wait and see. โ€ The sensational report issued, John Cumberland and Barry entrenched themselves behind secretaries, refusing to receive any newspaper representatives. Danbazzar discreetly disappeared. So intense was the public curiosity aroused that Professor Blackwell was forced to cancel a course of lectures and to retire to the home of relatives in the Middle West. Wild rumours were circulated freely. Anybody who had ever met Zalithea was interviewed and cross examined. Thousands who had never even seen her claimed acquaintance for the sake of a brief moment in the limelight. Reports flowed in from places as widely removed as Marseilles and Hollywood. At a cost appalling to estimate, John Cumberland had every one of them taken up and tested. All proved to be mareโ€™s nests. Aunt Mickyโ€™s life became a perfect burden to her. If it had not been for her recognition of the fact that Barry was breaking his heart over the affair she would have fled long since. Instinctively she had known from the first that there was some secret in connection with Zalithea which she did not share. Her resentment had been sharpened by what she termed โ€œthis damnable publicity.โ€ Save for very old friends, Jim Sakers, Jack Lorrimer, and a few others, society she had none in these days, but was compelled to hide like a fugitive from the tireless persecution of paragraph writers.โ€ฆ Then, it happened–the inexplicable thing; the event that, while it aroused a momentary hope, did so only to dash hope to the ground again. Barry and a secretary were going through the voluminous mail one morning. Barryโ€™s high spirit had quite deserted him. He looked physically ill, and was morose and silent. He hoped for nothing, in all these letters, but inquiries prompted by idle curiosity or lies designed to torture him. Then: โ€œHere is a letter addressed to you, Mr. Cumberland,โ€ said the secretary, โ€œand unstamped. It must have been delivered by hand. It is marked โ€˜Private and Personal.โ€™โ€ Barry stretched apathetically across the table and took the envelope, upon which his name was neatly typed. It seemed to contain a quantity of correspondence and also some small, hard object. He tore it open listlessly. A large double sheet of some very thick, tough kind of writing paper was inside. And, as he pulled it from the envelope, a ring fell out upon the table. Barryโ€™s heart seemed to miss a beat. What change had come over his face he could only guess by the secretaryโ€™s horrified expression. โ€œMr. Cumberland!โ€ she cried–and stood up. But Barry motioned to her to sit down again. He was staring–staring–at the ring which he held in his hand. It was an oddly mounted and very perfect piece of lapis lazuli. He had bought it in the Rue de la Paix for Zalithea! Uttering a stifled moan, he dropped the ring, and, with wildly unsteady fingers, unfolded the thick sheets of paper. They were covered with Egyptian hieroglyphics! One glance he gave at the writing, and: โ€œQuick! Quick!โ€ he shouted. โ€œGet my father!โ€ He sprang from his chair and began to pace the room like a madman. His brain was working feverishly. The letter was from her!โ€ฆ The letter was from her! Even if John Cumberland could decipher it, he could do so only very laboriously, perhaps inaccurately. โ€œMr. Cumberland is coming,โ€ the secretary announced. โ€œCall Danbazzar,โ€ Barry directed. โ€œHe is out of town. Mr. John Cumberland received a note from him this morning saying he would be away for two or three weeks.โ€ โ€œOf course,โ€ cried Barry. โ€œI donโ€™t know what Iโ€™m talking about!โ€ He clutched his head, trying to think clearly. Horace Pain was abroad and not expected back for a long time. But Dr. Rittenburg had been home when they arrived. He had dined with them only two weeks ago at Danbazzarโ€™s apartment and had had a private view of the contents of the tomb when these had reached New York through some mysterious channel controlled by their host. โ€œLook up Dr. Rittenburgโ€™s number,โ€ he said. โ€œGet him at all costs.โ€ And the secretary was engaged with the directory when John Cumberland burst in. Barry could not speak. He merely pointed to the ring and letter–and went on walking up and down. โ€œGood God!โ€ John Cumberlandโ€™s voice shook emotionally. He was staring at the writing, pale faced, incredulous. โ€œItโ€™sโ€ฆ from her!โ€ Barry whispered. โ€œSheโ€™s alive! Sheโ€™s alive!โ€ โ€œCome down to the library, my boy,โ€ said his father, regaining his own self control in presence of the distracted Barry. โ€œWallis Budge can help us here. I fear my knowledge is not sufficient.โ€ As they left the room: โ€œDr. Rittenburg has gone out,โ€ the secretary reported, โ€œbut they have given me a number where they think I can find him.โ€ โ€œTell him to come along at once,โ€ John Cumberland directed, โ€œor, if heโ€™s engaged, put him through to me in the library.โ€ A few minutes later they were engrossed in study of the extraordinary letter; and from the well laden shelves Barry, at his fatherโ€™s instance, had taken Budgeโ€™s standard work on the language of Ancient Egypt, Ermanโ€™s Egyptian Grammar, and other handbooks on the subject. โ€œItโ€™s going to be a hard job for me, Barry,โ€ John Cumberland confessed. โ€œBut it would be easy for Rittenburg or Danbazzar. Itโ€™s hieratic writing, of which I know very little.โ€ โ€œIs it–โ€ Barry began, trying to steady his voice, โ€œis it the sort of writing she might be expected to use?โ€ โ€œUndoubtedly,โ€ his father answered. โ€œIt was the form of writing employed by the priests and scribes. The papyrus and the formula are written in this style. But the characters in both are much more carefully drawn.โ€ โ€œFor heavenโ€™s sake, letโ€™s begin. Does it read from left to right or right to left?โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s the trouble,โ€ John Cumberland replied. โ€œSometimes it reads one way and sometimes the other!โ€ โ€œCan you find any clue–or any word you recognize?โ€ โ€œThatโ€™s what Iโ€™m looking for,โ€ his father murmured, bending over the page of hieroglyphs.โ€ฆ And for the greater part of an hour he looked, seeking aid in his researches from the pages of Budge, Petrie, and others. But he had made no progress whatever when Dr. Rittenburg arrived. As the library door opened and the round, red face of the distinguished Egyptologist was thrust into the room, Barry rose from the table with a cry of welcome. Dr. Rittenburg bent forward, his large, round spectacles shining as he peered in the direction of the students. As is the way of the human brain, an idea suddenly presented itself to Barry now, in this hour of intense anxiety–that Dr. Rittenburg was a reincarnation of Mr. Pickwick. Greetings were very brief, and: โ€œI must ask you, Rittenburg,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œto treat the matter about which we want to consult you as strictly confidential.โ€ โ€œCertainly, certainly,โ€ Dr. Rittenburg agreed. โ€œCount on me. Whatโ€™s the problem?โ€ Barry held out the letter. โ€œThis!โ€ he replied. Dr. Rittenburg glanced at him curiously, noted his condition of tremendous nervous excitement, then changed his large, round spectacles for a larger pair, equally round. He seated himself and bent over the writing. John Cumberland and Barry stood before the high, carved mantelpiece watching him. Courtesies were forgotten. They had not even offered the doctor a cigar. For perhaps five minutes he peered down intently; then: โ€œHโ€™m!โ€ he murmured. โ€œVery curious, if I may say so. Very, very curious.โ€ He looked up. โ€œCan you read it?โ€ Barry demanded. โ€œCertainly I can read it!โ€ the savant returned brusquely. โ€œBut as I assume you have not asked me to do so merely as a test of my ability, may I inquire who wrote it?โ€ An eager answer was on the tip of Barryโ€™s tongue when his father checked him with a gesture. โ€œThis is our real problem, Rittenburg,โ€ John Cumberland explained. โ€œWe have certain reasons for believing, or hoping, that we know the writer. But we look to you for internal evidence, in the letter itself, to confirm our hopes.โ€ โ€œI see,โ€ said Dr. Rittenburg, glancing queerly from father to son. โ€œThe internal evidence is here. And knowing what I already know of certain occurrences, I may say that this letter astounds me–literally astounds me!โ€ Barry could scarcely contain his impatience; but: โ€œWhile it is not perfectly formed in many places,โ€ the doctor went on, โ€œit nevertheless contains phrases that are beyond the compass of the ordinary student. In factโ€–he removed his spectacles and polished them with a pocket handkerchief–โ€œI doubt if there are six people in the United States of America who could have written it!โ€ โ€œIs it–signed?โ€ Barry asked. โ€œYes!โ€ Dr. Rittenburg replaced his glasses and bent once more over the letter. โ€œIt bears a name which I should be tempted to translate in a certain way if I were not afraid that my knowledge of other matters is unconsciously prejudicing my judgment!โ€ โ€œFor Godโ€™s sake, read it!โ€ John Cumberland was the speaker. โ€œVery well.โ€ Dr. Rittenburg cleared his throat and read: โ€œโ€˜Because I can be with you no more I send the ringโ€™โ€–he glanced up, and: โ€œI am almost sure that โ€˜ringโ€™ is meant,โ€ he said, and read on: โ€œโ€˜By this you will know. Do not lament me or look in many places. Forget. There is nothing else. My heart I leave behind!โ€™โ€ Again Dr. Rittenburg looked up, and: โ€œTo the best of my knowledge,โ€ he added, โ€œthe next, and final word, is Zalithea!โ€ Chapter 30. Marguerite Devina. โ€œThe Moving Finger,โ€ which waits for no man, moved on. But Zalithea did not return. The police had relaxed their efforts. They had nothing to work upon. It was obviously impossible to place the hieratic letter in their hands. Nor did its arrival assist the investigations of the private agency employed by John Cumberland. He allowed them to examine it, saying that the writing was believed to be in Princess Zalitheaโ€™s hand. They tried to trace the maker of the paper and of the envelope which had enclosed it, but failed. Their final effort was directed to the discovery of the messenger who had put the letter in the box. A reward of five thousand dollars was offered. No one claimed it. During these anxious days, Barry had not neglected the house of Mr. Brown. In a despairing effort, he had had the history of this country home examined–in vain. The property had changed hands during his absence in Egypt, and little could be learned of the former owner or of his associates. Agents had handled the transactions in both cases. The housekeeper–once interviewed by Jim Sakers–could not be traced. The nine daysโ€™ wonder lived its allotted span; and the world in general began to forget Princess Zalithea, who had flashed, a dazzling meteor, across the social sky of New York, and, like a meteor, had vanished. But Barry did not forget. He was not of those who love and ride away. For him a dream had come true–a dream held like a crucifix through years of waiting. He had lived in a heaven of moments. He had been snatched back to earth. And he was lonely. One faith he had. To this he remained true; it saved him from despair. Zalithea was alive; so was Safรฎyeh. Somewhere, they were together. And one day he would find them. Despite official evidence proving that no such persons had departed from the port of New York, a conviction was growing in his mind that Zalithea had returned to Egypt. John Cumberlandโ€™s anxiety, divided from the first, began now to centre upon Barry. Professor Blackwell, feeling that he might hope to walk the streets again without being accosted by newspaper representatives, had returned to his usual quarters. And one evening the two old friends dined together at the University Club, to discuss the question of Barryโ€™s welfare. โ€œBob Sakers couldnโ€™t join us for dinner,โ€ said Cumberland, when the Professor arrived, โ€œbut heโ€™s dropping in later.โ€ โ€œDanbazzar is still away?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ John Cumberland nodded. โ€œThe publicity attaching to this unhappy affair came very near home, I think. His apartment is shut up. I shouldnโ€™t wonder if he stays away for a long time.โ€ โ€œQuite–quite,โ€ murmured the Professor. โ€œOf course, for my part, I confess I am floored. I donโ€™t dare to think about it. The whole thing, from that unimaginable moment in the tomb up to the time that you received this incredible letter, often seems to me to be unreal–a nightmare.โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ John Cumberland agreed, โ€œit doesnโ€™t seem real. But–โ€ he sighed–โ€œit has ruined Barry.โ€ โ€œPoor boy–poor boy. She was very lovely, Cumberland.โ€ A long silence fell between them, until: โ€œDo you ever ask yourself,โ€ said John Cumberland, โ€œif she was–natural?โ€ โ€œMy dear fellow,โ€ the Professor returned, โ€œI have asked myself that question a hundred times! And I think it has been answered for us.โ€ โ€œHow? In what way?โ€ โ€œBy her disappearance.โ€ John Cumberland stared, and: โ€œI donโ€™t think I follow,โ€ he declared. โ€œIf,โ€ explained Professor Blackwell slowly, โ€œZalithea was supernatural, certainly Safรฎyeh was not. But Safรฎyeh disappeared with her!โ€ His friend considered the words for some time, and at last: โ€œI see the point,โ€ he said. โ€œItโ€™s a new one, I admit.โ€ When, later, Jim Sakersโ€™s father joined them, he put the case before him bluntly. โ€œThis thing has knocked Barry sideways,โ€ he told Robert Sakers. โ€œIn confidence, itโ€™s touch and go. Blackwell will bear me out.โ€ โ€œI have watched Barry,โ€ the latter admitted; โ€œand I am certain that heโ€™s on the verge of a nervous breakdown. He is crazy to go back to Egypt, via London and Paris. We donโ€™t hope that he will find the girl, Sakers; we donโ€™t expect so much. But I am quite positive that the journey will save him. Now–he canโ€™t go alone. Itโ€™s out of the question. Jim is his oldest friend, and you can very well spare him for a month or six weeks—-โ€ โ€œIโ€™m not asking you to stand the damage, Sakers,โ€ John Cumberland interrupted. โ€œIt wouldnโ€™t be fair on top of the inconvenience of losing your right hand man.โ€ โ€œLeave that part out,โ€ said Robert Sakers. โ€œLetโ€™s get down to dates.โ€ And as a result of the conference which followed, some ten days later Jim Sakers found himself, with Barry, bound for Europe. His profound and ceaseless amazement, expressed at great length, was an antidote to poor Barryโ€™s melancholy–as it was designed to be. New environment and the magic of sea breezes aided the cure; and after an idle week in London, during which Barryโ€™s restlessness seemed to have abated in a measure, they crossed to Paris. The faithful Jim cabled an enthusiastic report home; and perhaps Barry, by this time, had begun to realize that the journey was intended to be a โ€œcureโ€ and to reconcile his overwrought mind to the idea of resignation. But what he did not realize, what neither of them realized, was that they were helpless in the โ€œmoving rowโ€ of which old Omar spoke, and that they were being danced impotent toward that inevitable end designed by โ€œthe Master of the Show.โ€ Paris proved rather a setback. It provoked memories which brought about in Barry a relapse into melancholy. Jim worked like a Trojan to arouse him from his mournful apathy. โ€œRegard, oh, regard the glitter of the boulevard,โ€ he invited, as they sat outside a popular cafรฉ in the sunshine. โ€œUnknown to the old folks at home, in their sleepy village adjacent to the delta of the Hudson—-โ€ โ€œThe Hudson has no delta,โ€ Barry murmured. โ€œLet that pass. But still unknown to them, whether they have a delta or not, here we sit sipping perfectly good wine at a price for which we could not obtain a cup of coffee in our little home town. Therefore, let us rejoice! And, lo! here come soldiers–complete with band! Let us cheer!โ€ A small party of infantry marched past, accompanied by a large band. Jim stood up, watching them enthusiastically and talking away all the time. Receiving no criticisms from Barry, he turned. His flow of nonsense was checked. Barry, pale as death, clutching the edge of the marble topped table, was staring–staring–across the street, his ghastly features those of one who sees a ghost! โ€œBarry!โ€ Jim gasped. โ€œBarry!โ€ Barry did not stir. When he spoke his voice was a whisper. โ€œJim,โ€ he said, โ€œI have seen her!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ โ€œShe has just gone into the perfumersโ€™ shop opposite.โ€ โ€œBarry!โ€ Jim grasped his shoulder. โ€œWake up, man! You are daydreaming.โ€ โ€œWatch until she comes out,โ€ the monotonous whisper went on. โ€œDonโ€™t let her see you, for Godโ€™s sake. But follow her, Jim–donโ€™t lose sight of her–until you find out where she is living. โ€œBut, Barry,โ€ Jim began, a note of profound anxiety in his voice, when: โ€œQuick! There she goes!โ€ he was interrupted. He looked across the street. He gasped audibly; then: โ€œWait for me here!โ€ he said tersely. Zalithea, carrying a small parcel, had just come out of the shop and was walking away! Jim Sakers experienced a sense of sudden acute exhilaration. The wildly unforeseen had happened! And at last he was going to be of real use to his friend! What it all meant was outside the province of his mental powers. Who this mysterious girl really was who had so hopelessly bewitched Barry he had never been able to understand. Nor could he comprehend how she could possibly have reached Paris without the knowledge of the American authorities. But unmistakably it was Princess Zalithea and none other who walked along before him. Her lithe figure, her graceful carriage, the very turn of her head when she paused to look in a shop window were familiar to the man who had met her many times in New York. From the crowded boulevard into which she had turned on coming out of the perfumersโ€™ she entered a side street. Jim didnโ€™t know the name either of the street or the boulevard. His bump of locality was low. But he knew that he wasnโ€™t going to lose sight of her if he had to follow her around Paris all day! He was turning a problem over in his mind as he tracked the trim, leisurely figure. What should he do if she saw him? Zalithea came out onto another boulevard and waited at the corner of the street for a moment. Evidently she was going to cross. She did so, and Jim was delayed by the eccentric Paris traffic. When he finally ran over, for a moment he lost her. Then, just disappearing around the corner of the next street along, he saw the smart figure again. He hurried to the spot, swung round the corner–and saw Zalithea entering a discreet looking hotel on the same side. He was in the lobby a minute later–and she was talking to a clerk at the desk! Jim turned his back and stared out into the street through the glass doors. The lobby was small. He could hear every word spoken at the desk. And what he heard gave him the crowning surprise of the morning. โ€œNo, madam–โ€ the clerk spoke perfect English–โ€œno American mail has come in yet.โ€ โ€œThank you. If any comes later will you please send it right up?โ€ The speaker was Zalithea! Astounded–thrown off his guard–Jim turned and met Zalithea face to face! โ€œPrincess!โ€ he said. โ€œYou remember me!โ€ The girlโ€™s white teeth closed sharply on her lower lip. She nearly dropped the parcel she was carrying, but just managed to recover it. She flushed and as quickly paled. But she looked at him unflinchingly–and he knew her long, dark eyes. โ€œYou have made a strange mistake,โ€ she said, evenly. โ€œI am not a princess and I donโ€™t know you.โ€ Jim wondered if he were going mad. The clerk was watching him dubiously, so was a hall porter. โ€œBut–โ€ he floundered–โ€œbut—-โ€ The dark eyes remained fixed upon him inscrutably. โ€œIโ€™m sorry. Forgive me. But itโ€™s miraculous.โ€ She turned and walked out of the lobby. Jim did not afterward remember having seen her leave. It was the scrutiny of the officials that brought him to his senses and sharpened his ready wits. He turned to the clerk, taking a card from his wallet. It was the card of a member of the agency recently employed by John Cumberland! He tossed it on the desk, and: โ€œYou no doubt wonder what Iโ€™m up to?โ€ he said breezily. โ€œThereโ€™s the answer!โ€ โ€œOh!โ€ muttered the clerk, glancing at the name. โ€œI see. But you were wrong, werenโ€™t you?โ€ โ€œIโ€™m afraid so,โ€ Jim confessed–โ€œquite wrong!โ€ He stared at a menu that chanced to lie near and learned that he was in the Hรดtel Chatham. โ€œNothing for the Chatham to worry about!โ€ he added reassuringly. โ€œBut I should like to make my apologies. We have a reputation, too!โ€ He drew a pencil from his pocket. โ€œWhat is the name of the lady I so unfortunately insulted?โ€ โ€œShe is a Miss Marguerite Devina of New Jersey, U.S.A.โ€ โ€œThanks,โ€ said Jim, making a note of it. โ€œHere alone?โ€ โ€œYes. I believe she is expecting relatives to day.โ€ โ€œMuch obliged.โ€ Jim nodded in a brusque fashion based upon that of the lawful owner of the card and stepped out into the street. The street gained, his assured manner deserted him. He was the most hopelessly bewildered American in Paris. What in the name of sanity should he tell Barry? That this was Princess Zalithea he would have been prepared to declare upon oath. Besides, good actress though he granted her to be, she had failed to hide her surprise at sight of him. He had seen her bite her lip–to check what? A sudden utterance of his name? Probably. Her changed colour, her trembling hands, proved that she had recognized him. It was she. But what did it mean? How could he face Barry with such a story? Turning these problems over in his mind, he plodded back to the cafรฉ. From afar he saw Barry–watching. At sight of Jim he jumped up and ran to meet him. โ€œTell me!โ€ he cried, his eyes feverishly bright. โ€œWhere does she live?โ€ โ€œAt the Hรดtel Chatham.โ€ โ€œThank God! And she didnโ€™t see you?โ€ โ€œBut she did!โ€ โ€œWhat!โ€ โ€œCome back and sit down, Barry,โ€ Jim urged. โ€œGet a grip on yourself. Weโ€™re together in this thing. Let me order you a glass of good cognac. โ€œYouโ€™re hiding something!โ€ โ€œIโ€™ll give you the story word for word when you have sat down and had a drink and lighted your pipe. Not a expletiveโ€™ syllable before!โ€ He had his way, for he could be very truculent at times; and poor Barry Cumberland was a parody of his old masterful self. So, while Barry smoked furiously the story was told–a stranger story than any Jim had ever expected to have to tell. In conclusion: โ€œIf you are mad,โ€ he said, โ€œIโ€™m mad, too! Because Miss Marguerite Devina is Princess Zalithea. But Princess Zalithea only spoke gazoobi or swahili–and Miss Devina speaks perfect English. Now search me! Garรงon, deux cognacs!โ€ The chairs about them were becoming filled with loungers, as the day wore on to noon. A cosmopolitan crowd thronged the street and the neighbouring boulevard. Somewhere near by an orchestra had begun to play a melody very popular in New York. Newsboys shouted. Drivers of carts shouted. Everybody shouted. But Barry was silent. At last: โ€œWell?โ€ Jim inquired. โ€œWhat do we do now?โ€ โ€œI have just decided,โ€ Barry replied quietly. โ€œIt will be best for you to stay where you are at the Meurice. We donโ€™t want to frighten her. But I shall transfer to the Chatham, at once.โ€ Chapter 31. The Meeting. If Barry Cumberland had his weaknesses–and who has not?–he had one marked virtue. He knew what he wanted, and always headed straight for his objective. In fact, his impulsiveness was excessive and sometimes overrode his practical common sense. He was wise enough to know this, for he was well stocked with imagination; and, safely lodged at the Hรดtel Chatham that afternoon, he made a direct move, which was characteristic, but one that allowed of safe withdrawal in the event of failure. This was sound strategy. His tentative advance was suggested by the name of the mysterious guest–โ€œDevina. โ€ John Cumberland sometimes spoke of a Madame Devina, a once famous operatic soprano of the Metropolitan Opera; an idol of New York who had disappeared from the musical world at the height of her success. She had been entertained at the Cumberland home more than once during a brilliant season notable for her singing of Thaรฏs–the rรดle which had made her reputation. Those days Barry could just remember and no more. They belonged to the dreams of childhood in which his dainty mother figured as the centre of a wonderful world. Now, those memories served a good purpose, and, seated in his room, he wrote the following note: Dear Madam: Please forgive an impulsive countryman for intruding. But I chanced to see your name in the register to day, and it reminded me of the fact that my father, John Cumberland, and my mother, were formerly friends of Madame Devina. As the name is an unusual one, I venture to ask if you are related to that lady. If you are, I should be more than happy to make your acquaintance, and my father, I know, would be delighted to hear of you. Respectfully, Barry Cumberland. This he directed to โ€œMiss Marguerite Devinaโ€ and gave to a page to be delivered to her in person. His letter dispatched, Barry restlessly crossed to the window, which he threw open. It overlooked a garden courtyard, which for some reason cast his memory back to Shepheardโ€™s in Cairo. Many balconies looked down upon this sheltered oasis, and he allowed his imagination to tell him that one of them belonged to the room of Zalithea.โ€ฆ Zalithea! Was there any such person as Zalithea? Had there ever been a Zalithea? Once, this thing which had happened would have frightened him and set him questioning his own sanity. But now, as Jim had said that morning, โ€œIf you are mad, Iโ€™m mad, too!โ€ Would she answer? Would she consent to see him? If she refused, what next? His anxiety and impatience made it impossible for Barry to keep still. He walked away from the window; paced the room; listened at his door for the footsteps of the returning messenger; then went across to the window again. For long minutes he stood there, moving restlessly. He lost track of time. A knocking on his door recalled him to reality. He turned, his heart leaping. โ€œCome in!โ€ he cried. The page entered. At a glance Barry saw that he brought no note. โ€œMiss Devina will be downstairs at four oโ€™clock, mโ€™sieur.โ€ No doubt the world went on as usual during the next hour, and Paris lived and loved and laughed as Paris has done from time immemorial; but to Barry the interval afterward appeared to have been a blank–a hiatus in existence. Four oโ€™clock came at last.โ€ฆ She was seated in a cane chair before a little round table set for tea. She stood up as he crossed to her. โ€œIt was nice of you, Mr. Cumberland,โ€ he heard her saying in Zalitheaโ€™s unforgettable voice! He found himself seated beside her. A waiter was serving English tea and handing little dishes of cakes, biscuits, and sweetmeats. This Barry saw and heard through a sort of fog. Everything was muffled. His sensations were almost identical with those he had known toward the close of his farewell college supper. Presently, in a voice not unlike his own: โ€œYou have not told me,โ€ someone said, โ€œif my guess was right. Are you related to Madame Devina?โ€ โ€œDevina was my mother.โ€ The fog was cleared away by that definite, simple statement. The merciful numbness which alone had enabled Barry to behave himself rationally thus far left him. He looked into long, dark eyes. โ€œYou know that we have met before?โ€ he said. Marguerite Devina watched him unflinchingly. โ€œYou had an accident some months ago right outside my door,โ€ she replied. โ€œBut I didnโ€™t know that you saw me. You were unconscious when we found you.โ€ Barry clenched his teeth. An insane desire to laugh came to him. He knew he must fight it. โ€œYou are referring to my crash in New Jersey?โ€ he said evenly, tonelessly. โ€œYes. You must have wondered why we behaved so oddly afterward. The fact is that my guardian and I were booked to sail for Europe, and we realized that if we appeared in the matter it would almost certainly mean delay. We couldnโ€™t afford that, you see.โ€ โ€œYour guardian? Mr. Brown?โ€ โ€œOh, no!โ€ she laughed–Zalitheaโ€™s beloved laughter!–โ€œMr. Brown was the man who drove you to the hospital and took care of your car. We were tenants of his.โ€ She hesitated, bit her lip, and: โ€œWhen did you see me?โ€ she asked–โ€œbefore or after the accident?โ€ โ€œBefore,โ€ said Barry. โ€œOn the balcony.โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ murmured the girl, bending to pour out tea–โ€œItโ€™s a queer thing to admit, but Iโ€™m fascinated by lightning. Do you think–it was seeing me there that–caused you to crash?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ Barry replied promptly. He was watching the slim hands, the turn of her wrists, the line, seen below a smart little hat, of her creamy neck. โ€œYou were dressed very oddly.โ€ She stooped forward over the sugar bowl. โ€œYes; I was–trying on a fancy costume.โ€ She glanced up quickly. โ€œTwo lumps?โ€ โ€œOne, please.โ€ He watched her dazedly. โ€œItโ€™s amazing to think that my father knew your mother. I have heard him speak of her singing Thaรฏs.โ€ โ€œThe critics said she did not merely sing Thaรฏs, she was Thaรฏs.โ€ โ€œIs she—-?โ€ โ€œShe died when I was a baby,โ€ the girl replied simply. โ€œHere, in Paris.โ€ โ€œYou were born in Paris?โ€ โ€œYes.โ€ โ€œHow did you come to live in America?โ€ โ€œMy foster father is an American. He was once engaged to marry my mother, you see. But she changed her mind–unfortunately.โ€ As she spoke the final word, an expression of such implacable hatred crept over her beautiful face that Barry flinched. It was so that he remembered her on that night in the wรขdi! โ€œItโ€™s dreadful to say and dreadful to hear,โ€ she went on; โ€œbut my father ruined my mother, in every sense of the word. She would have died in a pauperโ€™s hospital but for Paul Ahmes.โ€ โ€œWho is Paul Ahmes?โ€ Barry asked, a sort of new awe in his voice. Marguerite Devina glanced up at him, and her eyes were very bright. โ€œHe is the greatest hearted soul in the world,โ€ she answered in a queer tone of challenge. โ€œMy mother brought him nothing but sorrow. Yet he spent all he had to try to make her happy–at the end. And he took the place of my father–afterward.โ€ โ€œAnd is he, also, an operatic artist?โ€ She gave a little choking laugh. โ€œNo,โ€ she replied. โ€œHe is, or used to be, a vaudeville artist! He retired years ago. He was known throughout Europe as โ€˜The Great Ahmes.โ€™ He was an illusionist. Not so famous as Houdini, but equally clever in his own way.โ€ Watching her closely and trying to steady his voice: โ€œAhmes is surely an Egyptian name?โ€ said Barry. โ€œYes,โ€ she replied composedly. โ€œHe used to work as an Egyptian. There is Arab blood on his fatherโ€™s side. He was always billed as โ€˜The Wizard of the Sphinx.โ€™โ€ With a curious eagerness she poured out these confidences. Obviously she wanted to do so. She watched Barry with those long, lovely eyes, as if inviting further and closer cross examination; as if challenging him to put her upon trial. โ€œIs–your guardian–in Paris?โ€ โ€œI expect him to day.โ€ โ€œDid you expect me?โ€ The abruptness of the thrust startled her, Barry determined. But if it were so her defence remained impregnable. โ€œNo,โ€ she replied, laughing; โ€œhow could I?โ€ And even as she lowered her dark lashes and looked in her bag for a cigarette, sanity whispered: โ€œHow could she? This girl, whose every movement, every expression, every feature, and every mannerism are familiar, yet is not, cannot be, Zalithea!โ€ Memory plays odd tricks at times, and as Barry struck a match to light their cigarettes, a hitherto forgotten remark of Professor Blackwellโ€™s flashed, intact, through his mind. It had been made on the evening that the Professor had examined Zalithea. โ€œThere is a small scar under the hair, just above the right ear, which suggests that the theory–now generally accepted, I believe–that surgery was practised by the ancients is not without foundation.โ€ โ€œHave you a small scar under your hair above the right ear?โ€ he asked suddenly. At this Marguerite Devina unmistakably grew pale. โ€œYes,โ€ she answered, and looked at him with half veiled alarm. โ€œHow strange you should know that!โ€ โ€œProfessor Blackwell told me.โ€ โ€œIs he a clairvoyant?โ€ โ€œNo,โ€ said Barry, and laughed without mirth. He met the glance of the dark eyes. โ€œI once thought I was, though. Now–I donโ€™t know what to think. But thereโ€™s something I must tell you. Perhaps I should have told you right away. You are the living image, a miraculous double, of someone—-โ€ โ€œSomeone?โ€ โ€œSomeone I love very dearly. There! Iโ€™ve told you! I came here, to Paris, to find her. And when I saw you—-โ€ His voice failed him. He turned his head aside miserably. The girl was silent for a time; then, very gently: โ€œDo you mean,โ€ she asked, โ€œthat you have come from America to–look for her?โ€ Barry nodded. โ€œWhat made you think you would find her in Paris?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know. We were–very happy in Paris. But Iโ€™m on my way to Egypt.โ€ โ€œTo Egypt!โ€ โ€œYes. That was where–we met. โ€œAnd you really expect to meet her again, in Egypt?โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t dare to expect. But if I left off hoping—-โ€ He did not complete the sentence. Marguerite Devina had abruptly stood up. Her head was averted. โ€œPlease forgive me,โ€ said Barry. โ€œI didnโ€™t mean to hurt you.โ€ Even as the words left his lips, he remembered where he had last uttered them–and to whom. She turned to him impulsively, and the memory was complete. Her lashes were wet with tears. โ€œYou havenโ€™t!โ€ she said. โ€œBut I must go.โ€ Barry reached out a detaining hand. โ€œPlease,โ€ he pleaded, โ€œlet me see you again!โ€ She averted her head once more, and: โ€œIf I can,โ€ she murmured. โ€œIโ€™m sorry–but I must hurry away now.โ€ And, stumbling in her haste, she walked around the little table and ran across the lobby.โ€ฆ Back to his room Barry went in a state of mind which he found himself incapable of analyzing. Was it possible, in the natural order of things, for two human beings to be so absolutely alike? As well ask himself if it were possible for a girl to live three thousand years! One being possible, why not the other? He was curiously reluctant to leave the hotel. Therefore Jim dined with him in the grill room whose chef has been preserved for posterity by Orpenโ€™s brush. Of Marguerite Devina they saw nothing. At the end of dinner: โ€œIf I donโ€™t stop thinking about this muddle,โ€ Jim declared, โ€œI shall become completely cuckoo. Itโ€™s the Folies Bergรจres or a lunatic asylum for mine. Make your selection.โ€ The selection was made. And it was at a late hour Paris time that Barry returned to the Chatham. The night porter handed him a letter. In his room he tore open the envelope. He began to read. Then, rushing to the telephone, he banged the lever up and down in a frenzy of impatience. At last: โ€œHullo! Hullo!โ€ he called, in a high, unnatural voice. โ€œRing Miss Marguerite Devina!โ€ โ€œMiss Devina left this evening, mโ€™sieur.โ€ And when dawn came it found Barry haggard, wild eyed, pacing the room, ever and anon taking up a crumpled letter and reading and rereading it. Chapter 32. The Great Ahmes. โ€œBarry Dear: โ€œI donโ€™t ask you to forgive me. I never meant to see you again. But when Jim spoke to me to day I realized, somehow, that you were here. And I knew you would come. And I knew I would have to see you. I didnโ€™t know how hard it would be–because I never believed you cared, like that. โ€œI donโ€™t know how to tell you what I see now, I must tell. It all began, really many years ago, when I was a baby, and when Paul Ahmes was giving up everything to make my motherโ€™s last days bearable. She had never loved him, but they had one thing in common. It was their passion for Egypt. She made her great success in an Egyptian opera and he as an Egyptian performer. He used to buy Egyptian antiques with all he could save. He knew more about these things than any dealer in Europe. Most of his stage properties were real. They inspired him. โ€œOne day my mother read that a ring which had been the property of the real Thaรฏs was being auctioned at Sothebyโ€™s in London. This ring had once belonged to her. She never sang Thaรฏs without wearing it. But poverty had forced her to sell it. Paul Ahmes, knowing what happiness the recovery of this ring would give her, went to London to buy it. This was like him. He did not bid, himself, as all the auctioneers knew him. He sent someone. โ€œBarry–your father was at that auction–and he has the ring to day! When Ahmes heard that John Cumberland had secured it, he wrote to him, and without mentioning my motherโ€™s name told him all the circumstances. Your father did not believe him. โ€œMy mother died the night after Ahmes returned. โ€œSoon after that, before I can remember, we left Paris and went to live in America. I grew up to look upon Ahmes as my father. I was always surrounded by things belonging to Egypt, for my guardian had left the stage and become a professional dealer in antiques. He was sometimes away for months together, in Egypt, where he had agents now that his business had grown so big. He had changed his name. John Cumberland was one of his clients. โ€œBut, Barry, very few of the wonderful and beautiful things he received from Egypt ever left Ahmesโ€™s possession. They went into his own collection–which is priceless; for this was his ruling passion now that my mother was dead. He sold copies, or restored originals mostly, to his wealthy customers. Some of the most famous museums in the world contain his work! His love of everything belonging to Egypt simply wouldnโ€™t allow him to sell a genuine piece. His genius for making duplicates for he is, truly, a genius made it easy for him to keep them. โ€œAnd all the money he earned in this way was spent acquiring more and more rarities for his private museum. โ€œThen–this was years ago–he stumbled upon the tomb of Zalithea. He reached it through a long narrow passage cut at some time by Arab robbers. He found there the great stone sarcophagus, and he raised and wedged the lid. The sarcophagus was empty. โ€œThinking that one day this discovery might profit him, he reclosed and concealed the opening. This opening, I must tell you, came out in another valley, behind the tomb, and it led, through a hole in the roof, into the shaft between the first and second portcullis. You remember where the roof had fallen? This second portcullis the thieves had broken, and also the door of the chamber where the sarcophagus was. โ€œI unknowingly inspired him to what followed–I and his wish to score over John Cumberland, whom he had taught me to detest. He said I had the true Egyptian profile. The showman in him came to life–this part of his strange nature was only sleeping; and he thought of the wildest plot that surely any man ever attempted to carry out. โ€œHe said to me, โ€˜I will sell you to John Cumberland! And if you play your cards properly you will marry a millionaire!โ€™ I was completely under his influence, Barry. I had never known any other kind of life but this commercial use of Ahmesโ€™s genius as an illusionist. I donโ€™t want to excuse myself. I prepared for the thing with enthusiasm! โ€œThis was when we came secretly to New Jersey. Mr. Brown, who took the house, was formerly Ahmesโ€™s stage manager. His wife acted as cook. There were other members of my guardianโ€™s old company there as well. For no one who had ever worked for Ahmes wanted to leave him. โ€œHere for a long time I lived like a nun. No one outside our small household ever saw me. When I went anywhere I was always heavily veiled. Ahmes taught me to speak Coptic. This was the mysterious language of Zalithea! Arabic I knew, because I had had an Arab nurse from childhood–an old member of Ahmesโ€™s company–Safรฎyeh! โ€œA year before the papyrus was brought to your father, Ahmes went to Egypt. He erected the screen, as you know, his agent, Hassan es Sugra, having traced the real, or front, entrance to the tomb. He broke through as far as the first portcullis, which he knew was intact. Then he reclosed and hid the entrance as you found it. The hieroglyphic of โ€˜She Who Sleepsโ€™ he himself carved in the rock. โ€œBy the other tunnel, the one he first discovered, he took in lifting gear and swung up the stone sarcophagus lid. The painted sarcophagus, which he had made in New Jersey and shipped out, he put inside. Then he lowered the stone lid again. The tables, lamps, couch, and other things he set in place. Some of these were genuine. Some he had made. He also added the cartouche of โ€˜She Who Sleepsโ€™ to the ancient inscriptions painted on the wall. โ€œHe cemented the door and, from the tunnel above, blocked the secret entrance. Then he came back to America. The stage was set for his last and greatest illusion. โ€œThe โ€˜Zalithea Papyrusโ€™ and the โ€˜Formulaโ€™ Ahmes had been at work upon for two years. They were the biggest achievements of his career! The materials had cost him no end of research. But no other man in Europe or America could have written them–to pass Horace Pain and Dr. Rittenburg! โ€œYes, Barry! Iโ€™m proud of him! Until you came, it never occurred to me to question his way of life. Besides, he had taught me to hate the name of Cumberland. It was a mania with him. I believe for a long time he held John Cumberland responsible for my motherโ€™s death. โ€œThe Zalithea dress, the strange ingredients mentioned in the Formula, and all the other things, he got from many sources, working patiently for months and months. He put his whole soul into the affair. โ€œThen, just as we were ready, you had an accident right outside the house! โ€œWe were in an awful panic. But Ahmes was always at his best in an emergency. You know how we managed to keep out of the matter. The household was dispersed. Only Mrs. Brown stayed to clear things up. I was hidden in my guardianโ€™s apartment in New York. And I nearly ruined everything one evening by going out to our old garden in New Jersey to get some flowers. Yes! I was there that day when you came! โ€œAs soon as the date of departure was fixed, Safรฎyeh and another Arab, called Omar, were sent to Egypt. Soon afterward I went, also. I sailed on the same ship, to Cherbourg, as Professor Blackwell! But it didnโ€™t matter, because we had arranged that I should stay in my stateroom all the way. โ€œI remained hidden with Safรฎyeh in Luxor until the night before the tomb was opened. That night I was smuggled across–and you heard my voice as I stumbled in the little valley where Omar was waiting for me! Omar you saw once. He is tall and thin, and you thought he was a ghost! โ€œIn a ruined tomb in that little valley I was dressed for the part of Zalithea. Safรฎyeh was there with me. But she went back to Luxor in the early morning. โ€œYou understand, now, that when you first discovered the painted sarcophagus I was not in it? He carried me up to the tomb during the second watch on the night before the lid was raised! I was placed inside. Then the lid was fastened down! I was frightened, although the gold mask allowed me to breathe freely and there were lots of air holes in the sarcophagus. โ€œI had to lie there for nearly three hours! But I had been training to do this for months before. โ€œNever shall I forget my relief when you came at last to unwrap me! Of course I had been prepared in all sorts of ways for the ordeal. And you will remember, Barry, that none of you had a chance to touch me or even see me properly up to the time that I opened my eyes. โ€œYes! You were in the hands of a master illusionist! โ€œAs for the rest–I was prepared to hate you! But on the night you came to my tent and said, โ€˜Forgive me. I didnโ€™t mean to hurt you,โ€™ I couldnโ€™t hate you, somehow. โ€œAhmes, too, had changed his mind about John Cumberland. He had learned to respect him; in fact, to love him. But he had to go on then! So did I! โ€œSometimes it was good fun. Sometimes, when your father talked to me, not knowing I understood, I couldnโ€™t bear it. But we didnโ€™t know how to end it! โ€œYou ended it! The night when you found me with that pig Edwards I knew it must finish. While you were asleep I went to Ahmes and told him. โ€œHe was sorry–for me; but glad that we were through. Safรฎyeh went to Montreal and sailed, under her own name, for England, three days later. I was here, in Paris, before you allowed the news of my disappearance to be published. Ahmes wrote the hieroglyphic letter to relieve your mind. It was delivered by the same messenger who brought another letter. He is here, now, with the others. That is why you failed to trace him. โ€œThatโ€™s all, Barry dear. We have a house in Paris. It had been closed, though, and so I stayed at the Chatham for a short time. But Ahmes arrived to day, and I am going to join him. He knows I have told you. โ€œDo what you like. But I shall be punished enough. โ€œYou see–I love you. โ€œMarguerite.โ€ Chapter 33. A Flash Of Lightning. โ€œJim,โ€ said Barry miserably, โ€œwhat else can I do?โ€ โ€œWell,โ€ Jim replied, thoughtfully rapping on the cafรฉ table to attract the waiterโ€™s attention, โ€œyou can order another half bottle of this very good wine, and then perhaps ideas may come.โ€ The order given: โ€œItโ€™s Kismet,โ€ Barry went on. โ€œIf she had confessed to murder I should still have wanted her! In fact, mad as it may seem, I love her better, now, knowing her to be what she is, than I did before.โ€ โ€œNot mad in the least,โ€ Jim commented. โ€œTaking into consideration the way she was brought up, I, myself, harsh though my judgments of frail humanity notoriously are, should feel the same. I could both love and respect the Marguerite who wrote that brave letter. I donโ€™t think I could ever have worked up any real enthusiasm for a living mummy.โ€ โ€œI know,โ€ said Barry emphatically, โ€œthat one day I shall find her again. When I do, Iโ€™m going to marry her if sheโ€™ll have me!โ€ โ€œStrong, sound sentiments,โ€ Jim replied. โ€œIt is men such as you are who make men such as I am love men such as you are! But the old problem arises; your father.โ€ โ€œI have made up my mind on that point,โ€ Barry declared. โ€œHe must not know–yet. Itโ€™s hateful, but I mustnโ€™t shatter his illusion. I shall write and tell him I have met the girl of the balcony, and that she is the double of Zalithea–and the daughter of Devina. Those who knew Zalithea will soon forget the resemblance when they hear Marguerite speak. Then, one day, he shall know the truth. Nobody else must ever know.โ€ โ€œWe shall have to lie like the Brothers Ananias,โ€ said Jim sadly, โ€œfor a time. This prospect appalls my proudly virtuous spirit. But itโ€™s up to you. What you say, goes. Meanwhile, a full week has elapsed and our patient inquiries have merely yielded, No, sir. Shall you go on advertising in the Paris papers?โ€ โ€œYes,โ€ was the answer. โ€œMy advertisement means nothing to anyone else. It might as well stand. Who knows?โ€ โ€œNobody knows,โ€ Jim murmured. โ€œIt is ignorance and not knowledge which makes us lose faith in Santa Claus. And this afternoon? Shall I scour the district in and about Batignolles as you so kindly suggest?โ€ โ€œJim, youโ€™re a brick! This โ€˜scouringโ€™ is no sort of way to enjoy a holiday in Paris. Just say youโ€™re tired, and Iโ€™ll do that part myself to morrow.โ€ โ€œNo, no, Horatio. Batignolles appeals to me because I canโ€™t pronounce it. And have I not said many times that I long for the life of a detective? โ€˜All forms of shadowing undertaken. Your pay roll guarded by machine gun experts in uniform. Missing relatives traced by our special staff of lady searchers. Our watchword—-โ€™โ€ โ€œJim! I love you, but—-โ€ โ€œGuilty! Dismiss the jury. We reassemble at the Chatham at six for cocktails.โ€ And so the quest went on. Barry had in mind a neighbourhood he had noted during a drive on the outskirts near the old fortifications. Here were discreet villas sheltering behind little gardens which, like the yashmak of a Turkish beauty, merely provoked without concealing. He felt sure that the house he sought would have a garden. Barry had considered the idea of engaging a detective agency to trace Zalithea, so strangely found only to be lost again. But, in the circumstances, he had decided that to do so would be unwise. Margueriteโ€™s letter he almost knew by heart. At first, the shock of it had stunned him. The readjustment of perspectives which it entailed appalled his brain. But out of all the chaos one fact emerged–a fact brooking no denial. He loved her. He could not imagine life without her. His eagerness was eternally conjuring up mirages. A group at a cafรฉ table would suddenly come into view–and she was there. As he drew nearer, all resemblance would disappear. He hated those unconscious mimics, some of whom were astoundingly unlike Marguerite at close quarters. Perfumery stores he unfailingly explored. And a hundred times he had run like a madman to overtake some girl seen in the distance–only to alarm a stranger. More than one gendarme had eyed him with suspicion. A tall, distinguished looking old gentleman, wearing the ribbon of the Legion and escorting a very pretty girl whose figure and carriage certainly resembled those of Marguerite, demanded the name of his hotel and promised to send his seconds to Barry in the morning. And now he was on the outskirts of the woods. Just ahead lay the group of villas which had attracted his attention on the previous day. He proposed to pursue a plan adopted on other occasions: viz.–to call at a likely looking house and ask if Miss Devina and her father were at home. Being assured that he had come to the wrong address, he could inquire if two Americans resided anywhere in the vicinity. Following an unseasonably hot morning, clouds had begun to gather shortly after noon. Now, it was growing very dark. The woods on his right were haunted by ghostly shadows. From somewhere beyond the western outskirts of Paris echoed ominous rumblings, to remind good Parisians of that black day when Von Kluckโ€™s Prussians came hammering at their gates. Then, suddenly, the downpour started. In sight of a charming little villa whose green shutters and green balconies were visible above a guardian row of dwarf acacias, Barry darted to cover. His back against the trunk of a tree the dense foliage of which promised shelter, he stood, looking up. A black thunder pall hung directly above. Except for the sound of falling rain, a profound stillness had come. Then, blindingly, lightning flicked its venomous fang from the heart of the cloud. The house opposite was illuminated ice blue, eerily. Every leaf upon the trees was lent a momentary hard, individual existence. Every nail in the woodwork of the villa gate, every piece of gravel on the garden paths, summoned attention vividly, alone, aloof from the rest. โ€ฆ And a window directly facing the tree beneath which Barry stood was thrown open. Marguerite came out onto the green balcony! Her lips were parted in a half frightened smile. Exultant, like a roll of Titanic war drums, thunder crashed and boomed and beat out its fury in dying echoes. Across the feathery crests of the acacias their glances met.โ€ฆ Barry uttered an involuntary cry. The storm was forgotten. The world was forgotten. Out into the drenching downpour he ran, across to the gate and on, up the gravelled path, to the discreet, glazed door. She had fled at sight of him. The balcony above was empty; but the window remained open. He rang, but without result. He rang again–and again–and again. He rang continuously. The door was opened. And he found himself looking into a wrinkled Arab face. โ€œSafรฎyeh!โ€ he exclaimed. She smiled, unsurprisedly, and stood aside to allow him to enter. He discovered himself in a little lobby furnished throughout in Egyptian fashion. There were antique tables and figures of the gods of the Nile. There was a fresco of subjects from Der el Bahari. A perforated silver lamp hung from the ceiling. And the air was laden with a faint perfume, the indescribable smell of Egypt. Safรฎyeh raised a tapestry curtain and again stood aside. Barry went into the room beyond. This apartment was littered with every imaginable kind of relic, from exquisite enamel necklaces to mummied cats. At sight of the treasures contained there, Barry was transported in spirit to a similar room high above the turmoil of New York, where once he had sat in conference with Horace Pain, Dr. Rittenburg, and others. Leaning upon a mantelpiece composed of carved red granite fragments adapted to the purpose was a tall man, the collar of whose white shirt fell open at the neck, while the sleeves were rolled up on muscular arms. One elbow rested on the ledge; the clenched fist supported a handsome, leonine head. A scarab ring glittered on his finger, as, raising the other hand to remove a cigar which he was smoking, he bowed in courteous greeting. โ€œDanbazzar!โ€ cried Barry. A roll of distant thunder from the moving storm echoed and reรซchoed over Paris. โ€œPaul Ahmes, at your service, sir!โ€ Danbazzar corrected him. โ€œBut the former, if you prefer it. Oneโ€™s as much mine as the other! Sit down and letโ€™s talk this thing over.โ€ Fascinated against his will, as he had always been fascinated by this manโ€™s extraordinary personality, Barry dropped onto a divan, silenced–stupefied–by the entire self possession of the speaker. Here was no recognition of wrongdoing; this was not a detected impostor; this was the masterful man to whom obstacles were merely stepping stones, who was fearless as he was unscrupulous. This was Danbazzar. โ€œMargot told me what she had said in her letter,โ€ he went on. โ€œI agreed. Get that clear. She did nothing behind my back. What she wants goes with me, and she wanted you to know the truth. Youโ€™d never have known if you hadnโ€™t followed her to Paris. But Iโ€™m not sorry, anyway. I have retired from business. Zalithea was my last deal. I regretted it long before the end came, because I found out that John Cumberland was white clean through. So, listen. Tell him if you like. Iโ€™ll hand you a complete list of all the stuff heโ€™s got that isnโ€™t right, and he can sell it back to me for just what he paid. Iโ€™m not playing tin angels: Iโ€™ve got a market for it at big profit!โ€ Barry was unable to restrain a smile. โ€œIf you ask me,โ€ Danbazzar added, โ€œheโ€™d be happier left alone. But do as you expletiveโ€™ please. Thereโ€™s no committee of experts in the world would say any piece from my workshop was faked–and you can lay your last dollar Iโ€™m not going to say it! As for the job at the tomb–weโ€™re all in the dock together. Pirates canโ€™t afford to quarrel! And now Iโ€™m going to talk to you about Margot. Iโ€™m going to talk straight, and I expect you to talk straight.โ€ฆโ€ He talked, and talked straight, for the better part of an hour. He displayed a side of his complex, twisted character, that Barry had never suspected to exist. And, at one point, when he spoke of Margueriteโ€™s remorse for the part she had played, the words of Hassan es Sugra recurred to Barry: โ€œBe not angry with her.โ€ Finally: โ€œNow weโ€™ve got it all set,โ€ said Danbazzar. โ€œIโ€™ve quit the United States for keeps. You know where I stand. Weโ€™re agreed about the bunch in New York. And I know where you stand. Settle the rest with the kid.โ€ He walked out of the room, stately, unperturbed; the Great Ahmes, master of the situation. Barry stood up. Suddenly, he had grown appallingly nervous. He paced up and down once or twice, among those priceless relics of an age whose loves and hates were forgotten before Paris arose from the forests. On one long, low wall, Pharaohs, gods, and goddesses made mysterious signs to one another, signalling: It was so in our day; it is so in this. The rustle of the tapestry portiรจre told him to turn. He faced Marguerite.โ€ฆ She stood on the threshold watching him. Her long dark eyes held the same expression as on that night when, unseen by Barry, she had stolen to the library door to take her last look at him. Yet something else was there, and slowly she came forward to where he stood. When she was close to him: โ€œMy darling!โ€ he whispered. His arms went around her very tightly but very gently–not as in that first fierce embrace. And when he kissed her it was a lingering tender kiss. Thank you for listening to ‘She Who Sleeps’ by Sax Rohmer. We hope you enjoyed this journey into the eerie and mysterious. If you found the story intriguing, donโ€™t forget to like, comment, and subscribe to Storytime Haven for more captivating tales. Until next time, keep your curiosity alive, and remember, the world is full of secrets waiting to be uncovered.

    ๐Ÿ” *She Who Sleeps* by Sax Rohmer is a captivating tale of suspense and mystery! ๐ŸŒ™ Dive into this thrilling story that will keep you on the edge of your seat. Who is the enigmatic woman who sleeps, and what secrets does she hold? ๐Ÿ’ค Follow the adventure of a daring detective and uncover hidden truths that transcend time and space! ๐ŸŒŒ

    ๐Ÿ“– **Story Highlights:**
    – A gripping mystery unfolding in exotic lands ๐ŸŒ
    – A mysterious woman with powers beyond belief ๐Ÿงณ
    – Intrigue, danger, and adventure at every turn ๐Ÿ•ต๏ธโ€โ™‚๏ธ
    – A thrilling tale of ancient secrets and modern-day detectives ๐Ÿ”Ž

    Join us on this exciting journey through suspense, danger, and unforgettable moments. Donโ€™t forget to subscribe for more fascinating story explorations! ๐ŸŽง๐Ÿ‘‡

    ๐Ÿ‘‰ Subscribe now: [https://bit.ly/StorytimeHavenOfficial](https://bit.ly/StorytimeHavenOfficial)

    ๐Ÿ”” *Stay tuned for more adventures!*๐Ÿ””

    #SaxRohmer #MysteryNovel #SuspenseThriller #ClassicLiterature #SheWhoSleeps #AdventureTime #DetectiveStory #ExoticAdventure #MysteryUnfolds #AncientSecrets #Suspense #Thriller #UnsolvedMysteries #BooksToRead #LiteratureLovers #TimelessClassics #EnigmaticWoman #SuspensefulJourney #StorytimeHaven #BookLovers #ClassicThriller

    **Navigate by Chapters or Titles:**
    00:00:33 Chapter 1.
    00:11:36 Chapter 2.
    00:23:19 Chapter 3.
    00:34:31 Chapter 4.
    00:42:57 Chapter 5.
    00:57:08 Chapter 6.
    01:09:18 Chapter 7.
    01:20:52 Chapter 8.
    01:36:17 Chapter 9.
    01:47:10 Chapter 10.
    01:58:13 Chapter 11.
    02:10:33 Chapter 12.
    02:23:05 Chapter 13.
    02:35:11 Chapter 14.
    02:50:25 Chapter 15.
    03:04:05 Chapter 16.
    03:13:47 Chapter 17.
    03:28:45 Chapter 18.
    03:43:22 Chapter 19.
    03:55:36 Chapter 20.
    04:09:09 Chapter 21.
    04:23:09 Chapter 22.
    04:37:20 Chapter 23.
    04:54:28 Chapter 24.
    05:04:47 Chapter 25.
    05:18:50 Chapter 26.
    05:32:59 Chapter 27.
    05:46:58 Chapter 28.
    06:00:33 Chapter 29.
    06:14:29 Chapter 30.
    06:29:19 Chapter 31.
    06:42:20 Chapter 32.
    06:52:41 Chapter 33.

    1ไปถใฎใ‚ณใƒกใƒณใƒˆ

    Leave A Reply